133 38 84MB
English Pages [410] Year 2000
Politics and Theater
STUDIES ON THE HISTORY OF SOCIETY AND CULTURE Victoria E. Bonnell and Lynn Hunt, Editors
Politics and Theater The Crisis of Legitimacy in Restoration France, 1815-1830
Sheryl Kroen
UNIVERSITY OF CALIFORNIA PRESS
Berkeley - Los Angeles +: London
Portions of chapters 2, 5, and the conclusion were originally published as “Revolutionizing Religious Politics during the Restoration,” in French Historical Studies, vol. 2, no. 1 (winter 1998).
University of California Press Berkeley and Los Angeles, California University of California Press, Ltd. London, England
© 2000 by The Regents of the University of California
Library of Congress Cataloging-in-Publication Data
Kroen, Sheryl, 1961Politics and theater : the crisis of legitimacy in restoration France, 1815-1830 / Sheryl Kroen. p. cm. — (Studies on the history of society and culture ; 40) Includes bibliographical references and index. ISBN 0-520-22214-8 (cloth : alk. paper)
1. France—History—Restoration, 18141830—Political aspects. 2. France—History— July Revolution, 1830—Theater and the revolution. 3. Moliére, 1622-1673. Tartuffe— Influence. 4. Legitimacy of governments— France. 5. Monarchy—France—History— 19th century. 6. Democracy—France— History—r1ogth century. I. Title. II. Series. DC256.8 .K76 2000
944.06—dc21 99-0483 30
Printed in the United States of America
987654321 The paper used in this publication meets the minimum requirements of American National Standard for Information Sciences—Permanence of Paper for Printed Library Materials, ANSI Z39.48-1984.
For my mom: Irene Stern Kroen, 1928-1998
Contents
Preface XI List of Illustrations ix Introduction: Staging Monarchy in a
Postrevolutionary World I
PART I. POLITICS AS THEATER 21 1. The “Counterrevolutionary” State and the Politics
of Oubli (Forgetting) 39
2. The Missionaries: Expiation and the Resacralization
of the King’s Two Bodies 76
3. Competing Commemorations: The Problem of
Performing Monarchy Log
PART II. THEATER AS POLITICS 155 4. “Practicing” Politics in an Age of Counterrevolution 161 5. Popular Anticlericalism: Defining the Sacred in
Postrevolutionary France 2.02 6.Conclusion Tartufferie 285 229
Notes 307 Bibliography 375 Index 387
Illustrations
1. “Down with Charles X, Down with the Catholic
Clergy, Long Live Liberty... !” 179
2. Fleur-de-lis foldup 192-193 3. Bonapartist suspenders 194 4. “Liqueur de Béranger” 195 5. The “Jesuit-king” in a gingerbread cookie 223
6. The “Jesuit-king” in a defaced coin of the realm 2.25 7. Tartuffe: “Oh, from here the work is marvelous!” 254 Map. Geographical distribution of Tartuffe incidents 2.57
1X
Pretace
This book analyzes the fifteen years of the nineteenth century when the Bourbons were restored to the throne in France after twenty-five years
of revolution, war, and, arguably, the most ambitious experiment in popular democracy the world has ever known. The portrait of the Restoration which it brings into focus, however, bears little resemblance to the caricature of reaction and reversal which most of us have been taught to expect. But then nothing I had learned about the Restoration prepared me for what I found when I first went to the archives. This book reimagines the Restoration as a period of extreme crisis, when the state and the church, in their own competing fashions, were forced to reassert their legitimacy, precisely in relation to the events of the previous twenty-five years. This period was not defined by a renewed alliance between the altar and the throne. Indeed the church and state were continually at odds about the conception of monarchy which should rule France, and their struggles over the fifteen years of the Restoration consolidated rather than reversed the secular gains of the Revolution and the Concordat. Far from being a period of political stability or quiescence, when the majority of the population was suddenly excluded from the political sphere, the Restoration witnessed the continued expansion of politics into everyday life which had begun during the revolutionary decade. Excluded from the voting box, men and women turned to their town squares, marketplaces, cafés, churches, and theaters; they penned and posted placards, uttered seditious cries, sang revolutionary songs, XI
xii Preface trafficked in the illegal accoutrements of the revolutionary and imperial
past, attacked crosses and busts of kings, and organized charivaris against unpopular priests and civil officials. Through this wide range of practices French men and women forced the state to take steps to sub-
jugate the church; they kept the ideological alternatives to Christian monarchy alive and vital; and ultimately they brought down the fragile monarchy in 1830, leaving France with a legacy of the Revolution now altered by the specific struggles of the counterrevolutionary Restoration. The road I have followed from my first days in the archives to this moment has been full of surprises and unexpected twists and turns. While I always intended to focus on the understudied early nineteenth century, and my goal was to understand the legacy of the French Revolution in the process, I never expected to write a book solely about the Restoration. I never expected half of it to be about religion; nor did I ever dream that I would be casting my whole interpretation of this period through the prism of Moliére’s seventeenth-century comedy Tartuffe. The archives forced these things upon me. In my unexpected intellectual journey I was far from alone; this book has been shaped by many generous people whom it gives me great pleasure to acknowledge publicly. For those people who have read different incarnations of this book, offered criticism, citations, and encouragement, please accept my warmest thanks: Marjorie Beale, Jonathan Beecher, Martyn Lyons, Peter McPhee, Jo Burr Margadant, Ted Margadant, Jeffrey Needell, Edgar L. Newman, Jeffrey Ravel, Maria Riasonovsky, Mary Louise Roberts, Sylvia Schafer, and Alan Spitzer. I would like to offer special thanks to Colin Jones and Catherine Kudlick whose feedback helped me to understand the importance of fraudulence and Tartufferie for making sense of the Restoration. I owe a special debt to Timothy Tackett for his tireless efforts to turn a panel he organized into a forum for French Historical Studies. Thomas Kselman, who reviewed my contribution to the forum for the journal, helped me improve both that article and this book by encouraging me to connect the struggles between the church and state in the Restoration with analogous struggles in the Old Regime. For sharing their unpublished manuscripts on related subjects, I thank Susanna Barrows, Elisabeth Fraser, David Higgs, and Darrin McMahon. For their helpful criticism I am thankful to the two anonymous reviewers at the University of California Press, my careful and helpful copyeditor, Eleanor Gates, and my editor, Sheila Levine. For shepherding my book through the publication process, I thank Mark Reschke.
Preface Xi The initial research for this book was funded by grants from the Chateaubriand Foundation, the Mellon Foundation, and the Humanities Council at the University of California at Berkeley. I was able to go back to the archives several times to do additional research on the missionaries as a result of generous funding by Pomona College, a National Endowment for the Humanities summer grant, and a travel grant from the University of Florida. For the time to integrate new archival material on the missions and to reframe and reconceptualize my understanding of the Restoration I am very grateful to the National Endowment for the Humanities and to the University of Florida. In France many archivists and specialists at the libraries have been extremely helpful. In particular I would like to thank Mademoiselle Le Brigand from the museum associated with the National Archives and Sylvie Bléton at the Bibliothéque de |’Arsenal. My intellectual debt to Lynn Hunt is palpable throughout this book. Her own work and approach to the Revolution of 1789 inspired me in the first place to go off on my quest to understand its legacy in the nineteenth century. But she has also modeled for me the art of being a men-
tor and a frank, critical colleague and friend. Many other professors have inspired me, read with me, argued with me, and given me the great pleasure of becoming their colleagues: I hope I can give in some small measure to my own students what Susanna Barrows, Thomas Laqueur, Robert Linn, and Michael Rogin have given to me. While teaching at Pomona College I had the pleasure and privilege of knowing two historians, Pamela Smith and Helena Wall, who offered endless intellectual as well as emotional support during my first years of teaching. Julie Liss’s careful reading of the introduction and her continuing emotional support throughout this process have been precious to me. Margaret Waller was a wonderful gift Pomona gave me; while teamteaching, researching in Paris together, reading and rereading draft after draft of everything we did, it became difficult to sort out where her ideas stopped and mine began. At the University of Florida J have many accomplished and generous colleagues. As I worked out different aspects of my argument, conversations with Swapna Banerjee, Alice Freifeld, Holly Hanson, and Rebecca Karl were invaluable. Louise Newman read
an early draft of the manuscript and, demonstrating her extraordinary talent as a reader and teacher, helped me to see where I was going and how to get there. Susan Hegeman read and listened to much of this book and was invaluable in helping me hone my theoretical arguments.
XiV Preface Michael Gorham, a specialist on the Russian Revolution and literature, read every page of the manuscript with extraordinary care and intelligence, and helped to make it a much clearer book. Kathryn Burns, my dear neighbor and friend, was my closest writing partner. There isn’t a page she hasn’t read in many drafts, nor an idea she hasn’t heard many times over a Leo’s waffle. I don’t know how I could have written this book without her love, support, and intelligence. The cast of colleagues at Florida who helped me would not be complete without my students. On two separate occasions I subjected my undergraduates to French history through the prism of Tartuffe, and their encouragement, enthusiasm, and good ideas propelled me along as I rewrote this book. Clearly I’ve had intellectual support aplenty, but ’ve had much much
more. I have been so rich in my friends and my family, whose confidence, love, and unending support made everything possible. Aside from the friends already mentioned, I want to thank Finnette Fabrick, Carla Hesse, Maura O’Connor, and Rebecca Rogers. My children, Leana and Joshua, born at different stages of this project, have given me
the perspective and the joy to see it through. Armida Gallindo, Kristi Barfield, Aurélie Maignet, and Melissa Poblete cared for my children over the years, enriched all of our lives, and allowed me to do my work.
Thank you with all my heart. Peter Hirschfeld, the love and anchor of my life, has been everything a person could dream of in a loving, supportive partner. But more than anyone, it was my mother whose total and unconditional love gave me the faith and the passion to do this and everything else in my life. It is to her memory that I gratefully dedicate this book.
INTRODUCTION
Staging Monarchy ina Postrevolutionary World
There may be nothing particularly new or radical about treating the writing of history as a sort of “staging” or history itself as theater.' But for the French Restoration the theatrical metaphor is not merely useful or suggestive as an approach to history; it holds the key to making sense of this fifteen-year period and to explaining its central place in the emer-
gence of a modern democratic political culture in France. The theater stands at the heart of my interpretation of early nineteenth-century France, and at center stage is one particular play: Moliére’s seventeenthcentury comedy Tartuffe. Two cartons of police reports at the National Archives originally focused my attention in this direction: first, on the theater, and, more specifically, on Tartuffe. Cartons F7 6692 and F7 6693 contain police reports and copies of songs and seditious writings seized during “troubles
in the theater” which shook France between 1825 and 1829 in over twenty different departments, in the context of more than forty separate incidents. Men and women went to their local theaters, plastered the walls with placards, distributed flyers, disrupted other plays, and when evicted from the theater took to the streets outside the theater—all to demand a performance of Moliére’s Tartuffe. In some communities the play was banned; this often resulted in audiences refusing to allow any other play to be performed until Tartuffe was permitted. When the play was performed, certain lines became the focus of intense political ex-
pression. The police knew when to prick up their ears, the audience I
2 Introduction knew when to laugh, boo, and hiss. This politics of the theater often spilled into the streets, where posters were hung, songs sung, and people congregated until the wee hours of the morning. These incidents ranged in duration from the length of one performance to up to a full month of
continuous agitation. Participation ranged from what the authorities called “a few troublemakers” to a majority of the local population, including people of all political persuasions and social classes. Wherever such incidents took place, the language and images of Moliére’s play found their way into popular political expression. Local and national events came to be seen through the prism of Tartuffe.
Why, of all public places, did people go to the theater to express their views? And why, of all plays, did they choose Moliére’s Tartuffe? The plot, the characters, and especially the themes of this seventeenthcentury comedy made it the perfect vehicle for expressing anxiety and
discontent regarding the central religious and political issues of the early nineteenth century. Seeing so many things around them as signs of “Tartufferie,” the “troublemakers” in the theater encouraged their fellow citizens and opponents to view their world in a particular way. In so doing they left behind a trail of documents which inspires a similarly original and illuminating new perspective for me, the twentieth-century historian looking back. Following the troublemakers’ cues, thinking se-
riously about the characters to whom they drew attention, and the issues which led them to take to the theaters and to invoke Moliére’s com-
edy, I too take seriously theatricality and its particular incarnation in “Tartufferie” as a means of making sense of history. Moliére’s play features a confidence man, a swindler, and a hypocrite
by the name of Tartuffe, who, by feigning to be an ascetic and pious man, is taken into the household of the good, if misguided, bourgeois Orgon. The “piety” of Tartuffe is a farce and provides for a good deal of comedy: while living with the family he tries to impose a rigid moral code, even as he himself indulges in the life-style of a wealthy bourgeois and does everything in his power to acquire his benefactor’s wealth. The
comedy is driven by the efforts of the weaker characters—the wife, Elmire; the daughter, Mariane, and her fiancé, Valére; the son, Damis; the brother-in-law, Cléante; and the most outspoken of all, the maid, Dorine—to get the father to see Tartuffe for the fraud he is. From the very beginning their ability to see the truth is proclaimed through the voice of Dorine, who, in act 1, scene 1, denounces Tartuffe to her superior, Orgon. “You see him as a saint. I’m far less awed; / In fact, I see right through him. He’s a fraud.”? Orgon refuses to heed the warnings
Introduction 3 of those around him and through the first four acts of the play signs over
all his wealth to Tartuffe, and even promises his already-betrothed daughter’s hand in marriage to this swindler. In his support for the hypocrite he is egged on by the only other character on stage who is taken in by Tartuffe, Orgon’s pigheaded and detestable mother, Madame Pernelle. Having failed in their direct efforts to make Orgon see
the truth, the other characters finally band together and plot to get Tartuffe to reveal his treachery to Orgon by means of staging a kind of “play within a play.” Knowing that Tartuffe lusts after Orgon’s wife, the characters set up a tryst between Tartuffe and Elmire in a room where Orgon can see them. In a particularly comic moment, Tartuffe proceeds to try to seduce Elmire right on top of a table under which her husband is hiding! At long last, Orgon accepts the truth about Tartuffe, but alas!
it seems it is too late. He has not only deeded his entire estate to the swindler; he has also made him privy to a secret which could land Orgon in jail. In the final scene, when it appears that everything is lost, the king’s bailiff arrives, but much to everyone’s delight, instead of arresting Orgon he turns to the good bourgeois and his family and pronounces: Rest easy, and be grateful. We serve a Prince to whom all fraud is hateful, A Prince who sees into our inmost hearts, And can’t be fooled by any trickster’s arts. . . . With one keen glance, the King perceived the whole Perverseness and corruption of [Tartuffe’s] soul, . . .°
Thus the play ends with a classic deus ex machina, perfectly suited to its context at Versailles under Louis XIV, with the all-seeing, all-knowing king acting to save the day. If one reads through the songs, placards, and broadsheets circulating in the context of Tartuffe incidents, the applicability of this particular
play to the local and national events in the 1820s becomes startlingly clear. If Tartuffe became popular in the years after 1825, it was because it was the perfect vehicle for criticizing the religious politics of church and state in this period. Tartuffe himself had long served as a stock figure in anticlerical literature.* But during the Restoration the church was spearheading a religious revival, orchestrated by zealous missionaries preaching an austere, almost puritanical variety of Catholicism which many people found oppressive. At the same time, churchmen seemed to be enjoying greater favor from the restored Bourbon monarchs. So while
preaching austerity, the church and its representatives appeared to be
4 Introduction growing richer and more powerful. Therefore, what could be better grist for the anticlerical mill than the somber ascetic who sneaks satisfying glimpses of exposed cleavage while inveighing against women’s revealing fashions, the man who grows fat on the opulent cuisine he so readily criticizes and who lines his pockets with the wealth he argues is so terribly corrupting? Equating the missionaries of the Restoration with
Moliére’s main character, Tartuffe, made perfect sense. Insults in the songs and placards were hurled most often at local curés and archbishops who, in language reminiscent of Tartuffe, “seduced more than one fair maiden” or “lined their own pockets with gold.” * The year 1825, when “troublemakers” began taking to the theater to demand Tartujffe with some regularity, is hardly an innocent date. As the year when Charles X (the more religious brother of the recently deceased King Louis XVIII) marked his ascension to the throne with an elaborate Old Regime-style coronation, 1825 seemed a perfect year to begin using Moliére’s comedy to question the clear-sightedness of the new king. Was this king, who many suspected of being a secret bishop, capable of acting as responsibly as the Prince in Moliére’s comedy? Given his pur-
ported role in a clerical plot to place the reins of government secretly in the hands of the men of the collar, could the people of France rest assured that “[the King’s] love of piety” would not “numb his wits / And
make him tolerant of hypocrites”? Could they expect that “With one keen glance, [this particular king would] perceive the whole” and work to protect the people from the wiles of Tartuffe and priests of his ilk? It is no wonder that the lines that most excited audiences all over France after 1825 were the two in which the bailiff pronounced, “Rest easy, and be grateful. / We serve a Prince to whom all fraud is hateful.” 7 In reaction to a wide range of specific provocations—from the arrival of missionaries to the publication of a local prelate’s pastoral letter, from the passage of the controversial Sacrilege Law (1825) to the local celebration of the elaborate coronation at Reims (also 1825) or the Papal Ju-
bilee (1826)—men and women in different parts of France turned to Tartuffe to express their dissatisfaction with unpopular men of the collar, their suspicions of local civil officials, or their uncertainty about the identity and the authority of their king. Tens of thousands of cheap copies of this play were sold with prefaces which directly instructed readers to “oppose the Tartuffe of the stage with the Tartuftes of the world.” ®
Through such prefaces, as well as placards, broadsheets, and songs, people in the 1820s encouraged those around them to see themselves as characters on a stage or to see those around them as other characters,
Introduction 5 but, most important, to listen to the warnings and messages of Moliére’s play and to apply them to their world.
What I do in this book is follow the lead of the so-called troublemakers and adopt the prism of Tartuffe to make sense of French history in the early nineteenth century. Just as in Moliére’s Tartuffe, where the “play within the play” helped reveal the truth to Orgon, I believe that
heeding the “play within the play” which was orchestrated in and around the theaters of France in the 1820s offers new insights into the Restoration and the political culture of postrevolutionary France. Paying close attention to the specific events in an around theaters in the late 1820s directs our attention to particular issues of religion and politics which have received too little attention from historians. The religious revival of these years, the perception of a clerical plot at all levels of government reaching as high as the king, and the rise of a popular anticlericalism in response to both (which was ultimately fatal for the regime) are the most important among them. If seeing through the prism of Tartuffe did nothing but force us to focus on these unexplored areas, its use would be justified. But Tartuffe is even more important because it offers a vocabulary for talking about the quandary in which the Restoration regime found itself and to which it was forced to respond in the early nineteenth century. Unlike the Prince in act 5 of Moliére’s comedy, who could be accepted by everyone at the court of Versailles as the natural and legitimate ruler of France, when Louis XVIII was returned to the throne in 1815, in the wake of the French Revolution, the Napoleonic Empire, and the recent Hundred Days, the king could hardly claim a natural and exclusive right to rule. Tartuffe has long been known by historians and literary critics as a play which participated in the “fabrication” of monarchical authority at its apogee under Louis XIV;° but
this book demonstrates that it is also fitting (although until now, ot well known) that this play should have been revived in the 1820s to proclaim and help bring about the ultimate demise of legitimate monarchy in France. In 1669, when Moliére finally slipped Tartuffe past the royal censors and played Orgon in the performance of his comedy at court, he and his
play were part of the vast and spectacular machinery through which monarchy was produced under Louis XIV. In the context of the court culture of the Sun King, Moliére’s play offered his patron an ideal por-
trait of monarchical authority, particularly in its oft-quoted (and recently added) fifth act. But the plot and themes of this comedy also con-
tained a critique of monarchy. The characters of Tartuffe and Orgon,
6 Introduction first of all, offer models of imperfect rule. Tartuffe rules entirely as a re-
sult of deception or “theater.” Orgon, on the other hand, clearly has some right to rule in his realm; yet his blindness and his susceptibility to deception make him a flawed leader, a fact which makes it possible, in-
deed necessary, for his “subjects” to plot against him to restore the proper order of things in the household. Furthermore, the device of the “play within the play” arguably expressed a more serious critique of monarchy. Just as Dorine and the other characters plotted to stage the love scene between Elmire and Tartuffe to reveal the deception of the latter, so could the staging of Tartuffe be seen as an effort by Moliére to re-
veal the theatricality of Louis XIV within the context of his elaborate court at Versailles. The words of the wife, Elmire, to her husband, regarding the scene she was about to perform, “Whatever I may say, you must excuse / As part of that deceit I’m forced to use. / I shall employ sweet speeches in the task / of making that impostor drop his mask;” 1° could easily have been applied to describe what Moliére was doing, especially as he added his act 5, with its “sweet speeches” about his Prince, in an effort to finally get the censors to allow Tartuffe to be performed." How were the people at court, caught up in the vast and elaborately ritu-
alized theater of power which was Versailles, supposed to “see” this supposedly ideal portrait of monarchy? If the play offered a subtle critique of monarchy, its unproblematic performance in 1669 stands as testimony to the strength of Louis XIV’s rule at that time and to his unquestioned claim to legitimate authority in France. By the time of the Restoration, however, a number of historical events had served to challenge the legitimacy of the Crown, opening the Bourbons to more serious attack inspired by this same comedy. Over the course of the eighteenth century the continued distancing of the monarch from his subjects, the dechristianization of the kingdom in general, the struggles between church and state regarding jurisdiction over spir-
itual matters, and the related rise of critical opinion in a new “public sphere” all contributed to what historians have called the “desacralization of the monarchy.” But nothing, of course, challenged the monarchy more than the events of the French Revolution and the subsequent fifteen years under Napoleon. When the Bourbons returned to France to rule in 1815, Louis XVIII could not merely present himself as the only “natural,” “legitimate” ruler of France; the previous twenty-five years had taught his subjects precisely the opposite lesson, namely that legitimate authority could be constructed out of many different elements, sustained by different symbols and legends, and based on different ideolo-
Introduction 7 gies. When the Bourbons returned they faced nothing less than the task of reclaiming their exclusive right to rule France, in a world where such a right no longer existed./? Possessing no natural or divine claims to legitimacy, the restored Bourbon monarchy found itself wide open to the critique that, like the main character of Moliére’s comedy, it relied for its existence on fabrication, deception, in short, on theater. The first part of this book, “Politics as Theater,” demonstrates how this crisis was both enacted and exacerbated during the Restoration by examining those venues where different scenes were carefully scripted
and staged, not by actual playwrights, directors, and actors, but by churchmen and government officials who regularly orchestrated spectacles throughout the period. Town squares, streets, and churches became the sites for the careful staging not of a fictitious and only subtly political comedy but of something much more overtly political and contentious, the restored Bourbon monarchy. In chapters 1 and 2, which present the ceremonies orchestrated by the state and the church respectively, one of the most basic assumptions about this period comes crashing down. Far from being perfectly allied in their counterrevolutionary zeal, representatives of the state and the church dramatized and promoted very different conceptions of monarchy in their public ceremonies. Even at the top, monarchy was clearly in crisis, but the competing ceremonies of the state and church did not merely illustrate this fact; they also publicized it and offered the population surprising ways of participating in the public negotiation over the nature and terms of legitimate authority in this period.
Chapter 1 looks at the two public ceremonies by which the regime defined and sought to relegitimize itself in relation to the previous twentyfive years. The first ceremony took place in public squares in every city, town, and village of France between Napoleon’s fall after the Hundred Days and the summer of 1816. Following orders from the minister of the
interior in Paris, local officials enacted the symbolic mise-en-place, or putting-into-place, of the Restoration by rounding up, inventorying, and finally destroying the “unnatural” and “corrupt” emblems of the Revolution and Empire. The regime also pursued its “politics of forgetting” every year, on the 21st of January and the 16th of October, in the way in which it represented the most problematic events of the Revolution, the executions of Louis XVI and Marie Antoinette. In the simple masses required for commemorating these solemn events there were no direct references to the act of regicide; in fact, orders from Paris explicitly forbade speeches evoking lurid details of these events. Likewise, the regime
8 Introduction consistently avoided direct representations of regicide in the commemorative coins and monuments designed for these occasions. Thus, by look-
ing at both its mise-en-place ceremonies and its reluctant approach to commemorating regicide, this chapter demonstrates that in order to reassert its legitimacy the regime clearly saw the need to erase the revolutionary and imperial interludes from the collective memory and thereby return the population to a world where monarchical sovereignty was still a given. Missionaries orchestrating a religious revival in these years also used their public spectacles to reassert the legitimacy of the Bourbon monarchy; however, their approach, which is the focus of chapter 2, could not have been more different from that of the regime. In their four- to eightweek-long revivals, culminating in processions which were truly the mass spectacles of the Restoration, the missionaries worked day and night to
reconvert the population into practicing Catholics. Intimately woven into this religious mission, however, was the very political goal of enabling their monarchs to resume their role as leaders of the Christian world. Resurrecting monarchy along these lines involved more than merely “ignoring” or “forgetting” the revolutionary interlude: indeed, it required that the missionaries do everything possible to make their congregations remember the Revolution as vividly as possible. Equating the
martyrdom of Louis XVI with the crucifixion of Christ, encouraging communal confession and expiation for the sins of the nation, and turning the sacred Host and especially mission crosses into political symbols representing Christ and their king, the missionaries engaged the popula-
tion in a mass movement which reasserted a conception of monarchy modeled on the Eucharist that had not reigned in France since the seventeenth century.!4 More than anything the state did in these years, the missionaries worked to unmake the political and cultural legacy of the Revolution. Looking closely at the missionaries and their efforts, this chapter demonstrates how these clergymen directly transposed the struggles of
the revolutionary era to the Restoration, and sets the stage for understanding how and why it was during the Restoration that “the transferral of sacrality to the secular and liberal principles of the nation” was finally accomplished.’ The third and final chapter of Part I depicts the Restoration as a period of continuous negotiation over the nature of monarchy as defined between the poles of “secular” and “Christian” monarchy. The laws and national ceremonies of the kings over a fifteen-year period are analyzed to demonstrate this continuous effort to define and redefine the nature
Introduction 9 of the monarchy. While the regime generally showed itself to be a defender of secular monarchy, after the passage of the Sacrilege Law in 1825, which explicitly equated attacks on the body of the king with attacks on the sacred Host, Charles X’s extravagant coronation in 1825, and his participation in the expiatory processions associated with the 1826 Papal Jubilee, there was good reason for many to question whether there was any difference between the regime’s and the missionaries’ way of conceiving of monarchy. It was the behavior of local state officials vis-
A-vis visiting missionaries which brought this question home for the majority of French citizens. While potential or real disorders occasioned
by the missionaries led the state in some instances to discipline these churchmen, in other cases state officials lent their support to the missionaries and thereby fueled the growing perception after 1825 that the government and the king himself were part of a massive plot to make the
missionaries the arbiters of France’s future. Drawing upon the correspondence which passed between civil and ecclesiastical officials regarding the tricky problem of the missionaries, this chapter evokes the terrain
in which the population at large was incited to participate in negotiations as to the nature of monarchy in this period. If Part I, “Politics as Theater,” analyzes the contentious efforts of the church and state to stage monarchy between 1815 and 1830, Part II, “Theater as Politics,” turns to the audiences for whom their spectacles were intended. Guided primarily by the police reports regarding seditious activities, this section leads us into marketplaces, town squares, churches, bookstores, cafés, and even the homes of individual citizens. If roundups of revolutionary memorabilia, the reluctant commemoration of regicide, and the erection of massive mission crosses are used in Part I to evoke the ways in which the state and church tried to constitute monarchy in this period, Part II considers symbolic sedition which defied the regime’s “politics of forgetting” and the many tactics protesters
used to prevent, disrupt, or control the spectacles of the missionaries. Like the extravagant theatrical efforts of the church and state, the practices by which French men and women supported and protested against these two pillars of the Restoration exposed the crisis of legitimacy suffered by the Bourbons in the postrevolutionary period. But in its detailed analysis of these practices, Part II also demonstrates that the citizens of France forged a path toward resolving this crisis. Chapter 4 focuses on the “unofficial politics” of the Restoration, and provides an overview of the repertoire of practices by which the men and women of France supported, subtly undermined, and overtly opposed the church
LO Introduction and state during the Bourbon Restoration. Establishing the calendar which governed popular protest, it considers the importance of national political holidays (such as the king’s day), traditional celebrations (such as carnival), or local events (a mission, or local patron saint day) in determining the timing of popular protest. Then, looking at where these political activities were practiced, this chapter maps the geography of local protest during the Restoration. The largest section in this chapter
focuses on “how” the people expressed themselves: looking at written, oral, iconographic, and gestural forms, this section provides a rich analysis of the placards, songs, seditious cries, pamphlets, and broadsheets by which a public sphere was constituted during the Restoration. This chapter ends with a brief analysis of who tended to participate in this unofficial political realm. Chapter 5 is devoted to popular anticlericalism because the majority of practices which comprise the “unofficial politics” of the Restoration fall under this general rubric. The strictly religious agenda of the missionaries is discussed at length because it is impossible to understand the widespread and growing dissatisfaction, distrust, and outright disgust
which the clerics engendered in these years without attending to the ways in which their new religious order directly affected the men and women of France. But the “religious” motivations for anticlericalism cannot be neatly separated from their political motivations or consequences. Thus, as this chapter surveys the wide range of practices by which men and women protested against the missionaries and other men of the collar, it is always with an eye to situating these acts within the political context of the postrevolutionary period. Attacks on holy objects within churches, disruptions of sermons, mockeries of sacraments in cafés, attacks on mission crosses, and calls for performances of Tartuffe are all conceived as a spectrum of practices which the people developed for determining the power of priests in their lives, the stance that the regime should adopt vis-a-vis the church, and, consequently, the
very nature of monarchy which should rule in France. Nothing illustrates more clearly the central political significance of popular anticlericalism than those practices which evoke the specter of a clerical plot. Was there a difference between the real and apparent power relations in the Restoration? Was the king in charge? Or was the government in the hands of counterrevolutionary clerics like the missionaries? The unease about this apparent clerical plot reached a feverish pitch between 1825 and 1826, when suspicion settled on the person of Charles X, who was said to be a clandestine bishop. A wide range of seditious practices were
Introduction II deployed to question the actual identity and therefore the legitimacy of the monarch himself. Such acts, when placed alongside other anticlerical practices, allow us to understand how the very nature of sacrality, and therefore of legitimate authority, was being negotiated in these years. Chapter 6, “Tartufferie,” is a culmination of the previous chapter on anticlericalism. Many of the practices which occupy our attention in the general discussion of popular anticlericalism proliferated in the context of Tartuffe incidents since Moliére’s comedy was particularly suited to the task of criticizing the religious agenda of the missionaries. But after 1825, this play allowed people to expose and express anxiety about the illegitimacy of the regime. This chapter opens with an analysis of the Tartuffe incident in 1825 in Rouen, where, like the characters in Moliére’s comedy, the protestors used the theater to reveal and reverse the pernicious power of the clerics in their town, in the name of the proper, legitimate authority of the secular authorities. The next section explores the nature of “Tartufferie” as it erupted all over France in the 1820s,
highlighting in particular the means by which it spread. While all of these Tartuffe incidents illustrate anxiety about the crisis of legitimate authority prevailing in this period, this section argues that they also produced the means of resolving this crisis of legitimacy and representation.
For as men and women took to the streets and theaters, as they sang their songs and posted their seditious placards in public, they developed tactics by which they could and did control their civil and ecclesiastical officials. This final argument about the consequences of Tartufferie was made most clearly by lawyers arguing for the troublemakers charged for their role in a Tartuffe incident in Brest in 1826. With this discussion of “Tartufferie” the main body of the book is complete; however, the conclusion lays out the historiographical consequences of recasting the Restoration through the prism of Tartuffe. In
particular, by presenting an interpretation of the Revolution of 1830 which comes directly out of my research on the Restoration, I indicate lines of inquiry which could be profitably applied to later periods. A significant part of this section completes the argument developed in chapter 3, namely that the “counterrevolutionary” Restoration regime, although quite sympathetic to the state religion, ironically developed mechanisms for policing and controlling the church which consolidated the secular legacy of the Revolution. Here I look at the overtly anticlerical July Monarchy’s response to the widespread violence against mission crosses between 1831 and 1834. It is quite clear that, like the seditious
12 Introduction acts against these crosses which mimicked practices conceived in the Restoration, the local government officials who dealt with these violent anticlerical acts were merely perfecting and applying tactics that had been honed for fifteen years under the Restoration government. IJ also consider the benefits of applying to the July Monarchy the same set of questions which defined my efforts to understand the restored monarchy
of 1815: how could Louis-Philippe constitute himself as a legitimate monarch in 1830? What role did the population play in constructing legitimate authority outside the still limited “official” politics of the July
Monarchy? I also raise questions about French history since 1830, thinking in particular about historical moments in which crises of legitimacy produced similarly contentious acts of commemoration, and in which a focus on cultural practices, defined quite broadly, might enrich our understanding of the past. Taking my final cue from the “Tartufferie” of the 1820s, I conclude this book with a discussion of the usefulness of thinking about the emergence of democracy in relationship to theater.
Restaging the Restoration The staging of the Restoration presented in this book emphasizes characters, sets, and plots which have not traditionally been the focus of histories of this period. At center stage are officials of the regime, in particular those representing the king, his ministers, the legislature, and their policies at the local level. Representatives of the Catholic church and, in particular, the itinerant missionaries orchestrating a religious revival are likewise given leading roles. Alongside these organizers of the com-
peting spectacles of the church and state are the men and women of France who attended their performances passively, or, more interestingly, engaged as active participants and supporters of the missions, or as authors of seditious practices directed against the missionaries, the representatives of the monarchy, or both. Certain settings dominate my rendering of the Restoration: the public spaces where the state and church orchestrated their respective versions of France’s past, present, and future figure largely, as do those venues which became favored sites of opposition, such as marketplaces, cafés, churches, and especially theaters. While Paris is important as the place from which orders were given to local officials, where laws were passed, and where the king resided and presided over special ceremonies, my emphasis is on the provinces, the
Introduction 13 context in which most French citizens witnessed, made sense of, responded to, and played a role in shaping the history of the period. The action or “plot” which dictated my analysis is, in Part I, the ceremonial representations of the church and state, and, in Part II, the diverse practices comprising the “unofficial politics” of the Restoration. While key national events such as the accession of the new king, Charles X, or the passage of the Sacrilege Law figure in my narrative, they are there to explain local perceptions and actions. Debates in the legislative chambers or the results of national elections are less important, for example, than the increasingly “national” repertoire of practices deployed against the missionaries and the regime, whether in the form of mockeries of the sacraments, disruptions of church services by stink bombs, command performances of Tartujfe, or representations of Charles X as the Jesuitking in cookies, puns, or the disfigured coins of the realm. This is hardly the Restoration that has been presented to us by historians in the past. Histories of the period 1815-1830 have tended to focus on those figures who participated in national, official politics: the kings, their ministers, other members of the royal family, leaders of national political factions, and the small fraction of the population that was enfranchised.!¢ Works which focus on political ideology and political debates of this period go beyond this limited repertoire of characters to imagine the students hearing lectures at the Athenée from the likes of Victor Cousin, contemporary historians offering competing interpretations of the Restoration, elite men taking advantage of the expand-
ing network of “cabinets de lecture,” and the broader reading public brought into national political debates by the pamphlet wars and massive propaganda campaign which became especially important after 1825.17 One recent book on the Fédérés who supported Napoleon’s final
gambit in 1814, and who remained involved in politics throughout the Restoration, points to a broader oppositional coalition.1® Various books on illegal political activity allow us to imagine the world of politics beyond the ballot box, but they tend to focus on small, organized groups, or short-lived movements.!? Only studies of anticlericalism have allowed
us to envision a broader participation in the political arena, but even there the tendency is to focus on published sources, and on liberal propaganda campaigns orchestrated from above and from Paris, rather than on the popular anticlerical practices of the population at large.*° With the exception of two recent books on the Revolution of 1830 which explicitly look back to the 1820s to make sense of the Three Glorious
14 Introduction Days, the broader population of France only rarely appears on the historical stage during the Restoration in discussions of matters concerning politics.*!
The “settings” which have dominated prior treatments of the Restoration are related to the narrow conceptualization of politics that informs them. Earlier works tend to focus on institutions of government, such as the chambers, the ministries in Paris, the king’s palace; the headquarters of national newspapers; the meeting places of organized political groups, whether legal or illegal; reading rooms created by such competing political and religious groups; university amphitheaters; and banquet halls and public meeting places during preelection periods. The sites of the Missions to the Interior are invoked, as are the theater riots of the post-1825 period; but these are treated as secondary phenomena, useful for illustrating the church-state alliance of the period, the rise of anti-Jesuitism, or liberal anticlericalism.?2 Those who have focused their attention on the Missions to the Interior have tended to emphasize their religious or intellectual aspects, and while political considerations are not absent, they are certainly not central to the analysis.73 The struggles in churches, carnivalesque mockeries in cafés and town squares, and violence against mission crosses have begun to attract the attention of historians, particularly those interested in understanding the antecedents to the anticlerical and carnivalesque practices associated with the Revolution of 1830; but these have never been the focus of a full-scale analysis which tries to link up such venues and practices with a broader understanding of the ideological dilemmas and political culture of the Restoration.**
In preceding interpretations the Restoration has been analyzed primarily in relation to the Old Regime to which it was apparently a “return” or as part of the narrative concerning the right wing in France, which includes other periods when elements of the right wing came to power, such as the July Monarchy, the authoritarian Second Empire, or the Vichy regime in the twentieth century. If integrated into a discussion
of the rise of democracy in France, it is only in narrow institutional terms which focus on voting practices, parliamentary procedure, ministerial responsibility, and which present the Restoration as a kind of apprenticeship in constitutional monarchy. Two of the most recent books on the Restoration illustrate this perfectly: Emmanuael de Waresquiel and Benoit Yvert’s History of the Restoration, 1814-1830: The Birth of Modern France (1996) along with Pierre Rosanvallon’s The Impossible Monarchy: The Charters of 1814 and of 1830 (1994) argue that this pe-
Introduction 15 riod must be integrated into the political history of modern France, but both focus narrowly on official politics, using debates in the chambers and shifts in constitutional thought and practice to make their points.”° The Restoration is excluded from histories which chart the emergence of democratic or republican political culture in France.*® Contrary to the
interpretation which I offer, the Restoration is generally portrayed as a step backward, an embarrassing interlude in the progression toward modernity and popular democracy. There are two critical exceptions to this. The first is Tudesq’s analysis of the social consequences of the Revolution, which analyzes the society of notables which came into being by the 1840s.?” The second is Isser Wolloch’s recent study, The New Re-
gime: Transformation of the French Civic Order, 1789-1820s, which clearly tries to integrate the “reactionary” Restoration into our understanding of the legacies of the French Revolution. Like de Toqueville’s corresponding study of the Old Regime, Wolloch’s analysis beautifully illustrates the importance of looking for continuities and progressive changes that took place in spite of the political discontinuities which have preoccupied historians until now. His critical study of lawmaking, formal political practices, the state bureaucracy, primary education, the justice system, and conscription anticipates many of my conclusions regarding the Restoration.7®
The simplest explanation for the disparity between my own and previous interpretations of the political history of the Restoration is that the Restoration has simply been ignored for a very long time; a whole wave of historiography which has transformed the way we understand polltics as political culture when thinking about the Old Regime, the Revolution, and much of the nineteenth century after 1830, and especially af-
ter 1848, has simply never been brought to bear on this period. The three-volume series entitled The French Revolution and the Creation of Modern Political Culture beautifully illustrates the contrast between the thorough rethinking of the politics of the Old Regime and of the French Revolution as “political culture” in the first two volumes and the relative paucity of scholarship attempting the same for the early nineteenth century.’ Despite its misleading title, the third volume, The Transfor-
mation of Political Culture, 1789-1848, demonstrates that there is a new vogue in early-nineteenth-century political history (especially in France), but its interest is political theory, not political culture. In the introduction the editors, Francois Furet and Mona Ozouf, explain that the articles in their volume “study the ways in which the French Revolution has been portrayed in European thought and how its legacy influenced
16 Introduction the development of political philosophy in the nineteenth century.” °° Even the American scholars included, whose previous works had more of a focus on political culture, turned their attention to the intellectual historical aspects of their topics in their contributions to this particular volume.?! Several tendencies in the historiography of nineteenth-century France
explain why this new approach to political history has not yet been applied to the Restoration. First, as I have already mentioned, revolution
and counterrevolution are not studied together, but rather are segregated into two separate discussions; historians have either studied the right wing in France, and the periods of reaction associated with its development, or they have focused on the “republican tradition” in periods during which republicanism, and democracy in general, were presumed to have made progress.** The shift toward rethinking the political history of the nineteenth century as political culture has characterized recent inquiries into the left wing in France and its development during the July Monarchy and the Second and Third Republics, but the Restoration has played a minor role in such discussions. This is related to a second tendency in the literature on the nineteenth century, which is to exclude the Restoration from the more general discussion of the rise of modern political culture in France because the period between 1799 and 1830 is seen as “premodern” and therefore outside the discussion of the many factors which “modernized” politics in France. Whether historians have focused on the economic, social, or cultural changes which politicized French peasants and integrated them into a national political discourse, their analysis has rarely strayed to periods earlier than 1830. The Restoration could be ignored in discussions of the political legacy
of the Revolution because it has been wrongly assumed that the “republican tradition” had no relevant history in this period, and that politics, especially national politics, was simply not a part of most French men’s and women’s lives before 1830. The tendency to ignore periods of reaction when discussing the legacy of the political culture of the Revolution is clear in recent studies of the symbolic forms and practices which came to comprise the republican tradition over the course of the nineteenth century. These studies focus only on periods when this symbolic system was officially accepted and used by the various regimes; they also tend to point inexorably toward the Third Republic, when republican festivals and symbols finally “came to power.” *? Studies of republican festivals, for example, focus only on the Revolution (1789-1799), the July Monarchy (1830-1848), the Sec-
Introduction L7 ond Republic (1848-1851), and the Third Republic (1871-1940) and disregard the intervening reactionary periods.** The same pattern can be seen in the volume of Pierre Nora’s series on the collective memory of France devoted to The Republic; while there are four articles dedicated
to such cultural inventions of the revolutionary decade as the tricolor flag, the republican calendar, the “Marseillaise,” and the 14 juillet, they all focus on periods when governments acknowledged them as part of their legacy.*°
In his Marianne into Battle, which traces the fate of this feminine representation of the republic from 1789 to 1880, Maurice Agulhon specifically underscores the importance of the symbolic struggle between revolution and counterrevolution in France; yet this struggle does not occupy a defining place in his analysis. Agulhon argues that the First Republic’s cultural revolution left the French nation with “two political movements
[Revolution and Counterrevolution] and two systems of thought, but also, and consequently, two symbolic systems.” He goes on to say that this “accounts for one striking characteristic of French history: over a long period of time the most serious political conflicts are accompanied by a counterpoint of conflicting symbols.” The evidence presented in this book bears out Agulhon’s suggestion: clearly during the Restoration the church and state actively, if differently, confronted the symbolic systems of the republic (as well as the empire), and gave new meaning and significance to the republican and Bonapartist symbolic sedition which figured so prominently in the unofficial politics of this period. Yet Agulhon’s own discussion of the Restoration period is limited to one anecdote about the political struggle of 1814-15 also being “a struggle between different flags and even more between different flowers.” 7°
For historians interested in the other system of thought or symbolic system, namely the ceremonial and symbolic trappings of monarchy, the same tendency can be seen to ignore those cultural practices and ideologies with which they were in conflict. Wacquet’s The Royal Festival during the Restoration, or the Old Regime Rediscovered fits squarely within this schema, since it presents the Restoration regime only in terms of its efforts to hearken back to the festive practices of monarchs of the Old Regime, consistently eschewing any discussion of the ideological quandaries produced by the Revolution which made such a “return” impossible. Like the emblems and festive practices associated with republicanism, the ceremonial trappings of monarchy are set apart, outside of the struggle with opposing symbols and practices which gave them new historical significance and meaning in this period.?” An exception to
18 Introduction this general rule can be found in the work of two art historians, Anne Wagner and Elisabeth Fraser, who in their respective studies of sculpture
and painting of the Restoration explicitly treat the complex problem of representing monarchy in light of the revolutionary and imperial legacies.*°
In the 1960s and 1970s the focus of political history shifted to the middle of the nineteenth century, to the moment when conditions were assumed to be ripe for the emergence of modern, democratic political culture. Historians in France focused on demography and on the social and
economic history of different regions, and accented the modernization and growing integration of the French nation by mid-century. Historians in the United States were more interested in questions concerning political modernization.*° Led by Charles Tilly, who tried to distinguish modern from traditional forms of violent protest, historians produced a series of studies focusing on different ways in which politics was “modernized” in the nineteenth century—all of them ending in the Second Republic.* For Ted Margadant economic changes combined with the development of a network of national political organizations to create a movement capable of challenging the state in the insurrection of 1851.42 For Edward Berenson it was the development of “modern” propaganda techniques, used by democratic-socialist ideologues and militants, which explained the politicization of the French peasantry and their integration into a national political discourse between 1830 and 1852. This veritable renaissance in the study of the Second Republic has left us with a wonderfully rich portrait of popular political culture in the period 1848-1851. But it has only emphasized the scarcity of information we have about this realm in other periods of French history of the nineteenth century, particularly those cast as periods of reaction. Susanna Barrows, speaking of the Second Empire, notes that the 18 50s, for example, “maintain an eerie silence in the face of the ruthlessly efficient ‘authoritarian’ empire.” +> The extraordinary politicization of the Second Republic is presumed to have disappeared, as if it were possible for French men and women who had risen up against the state in 1851 suddenly to suffer “collective amnesia in their political consciousness.” *¢ If it was the extraordinary repression of the Second Empire, so meticulously studied by John Merriman, which explains the lack of attention to the period after 1851, it is the presumption of “premodernity” which precluded the discussion of popular political culture and consciousness during the Restoration.*’
Introduction 19 In the currently accepted interpretation of the nineteenth century, the economic, social, and political changes which explained the politiciza-
tion of the peasants of 1848 became important only after 1830. According to this view, national politics simply did not touch the everyday lives of most French peasants before this historical juncture; these men and women lived according to the rhythms of the seasons and according to the demands of local customs and folklore. This assumption is what led Maurice Agulhon, one of the leading scholars of the nineteenth century, to make the following statement about the place of politics in rural France before 1830: “One could say, simplifying things somewhat, that this place is nonexistent (nulle) before 1830, modest between 1830 and 1848, important, even massive, and decisive after 1848 and the establishment of universal suffrage.” 4° By presenting Agulhon’s self-proclaimed “simplification” of the political situation in France prior to 1830, I do not mean to imply that he and other historians have completely ignored evidence to the contrary. In fact, in his own Republic in the Village Agulhon shows himself to be ever sensitive to folkloric practices and the ways in which struggles over matters such as burial rites and carnival rituals eventually led French men and women to embrace the secular and liberal values associated
with the republic; but for him, this process did not make significant progress until the years preceding the Second Republic. As my chapters 2, 3, and especially 5 demonstrate, if this perspective has reigned it is largely because historians interested in politics have not taken seriously the national religious revival orchestrated by the missions or the political struggles they engendered. In a short piece written on the theater incidents of the Restoration, Alain Corbin acknowledges the importance which the missions may have had in the political history of this period when he says, “The Restoration is the time of the great missions; it would be without a doubt fruitful to place these theater riots in the context of the great processions of the [missions].”*? But tellingly, this comment is relegated to a footnote, and underscores the fact that the missions, like the popular struggles of the Restoration more generally, have until now not been considered central for explaining the emergence of a modern, national democratic political culture in France. This book attempts to bring the new ways of thinking about political culture to bear on the early nineteenth century, and to avoid some of the biases which have led to the many silences and weaknesses in the historiography outlined here. My restaging exposes the critical role of this
20 Introduction “counterrevolutionary” period in transforming and securing many legacies of the revolutionary period. Far from being a mere step back, this book shows how the regime’s politics of oubli combined with the missionaries’ project of expiation to transpose the struggles of the revolutionary period to the nineteenth century. The many practices deployed against the missionaries and the regime are proof that this was a period defined by an increasingly national, public struggle over the problem of legitimate authority, a process in which the general population engaged
in surprising ways, and not always for political reasons, but which nonetheless had clear political and ideological consequences. This inter-
pretation reimagines the Restoration as a kind of ideological crucible which left a tangible legacy of practices as well as ideals which would constitute the political culture of France in the nineteenth century. In addition to reinserting the Restoration as a critical link between the Revolution of 1789 and the rest of the nineteenth century, this book demonstrates how useful it can be to use the Restoration to turn back and think critically about the Old Regime. Again, it was Tartuffe that pushed me in this direction. In order to explain why the very same comedy could have served in the 1660s to consolidate the absolute rule of Louis XIV and after 1825 to expose the illegitimacy of Charles X’s reign, I was forced to think seriously about what had changed in the intervening years. In this enterprise I could rely upon a rich historiography on the early modern period. I present this literature in brief introductions to each of the two parts of this book in order to show quite concretely how the Restoration came to secure the legacy of the fires of revolution, but also how both “from above” and “from below” the Restoration was the culmination of centuries of practices by which monarchy was both constituted and ultimately undermined.
Politics as Theater
he main action of “Politics as Theater” takes place in the fifteen
) years of the Bourbon Restoration, and the leading roles are
played by representatives of the church and state who, in different ways, set about the difficult, and ultimately impossible, task of reasserting the age-old legitimacy of the monarchy in France. Yet before we enter the town squares and churches where these officials represented monarchical authority to the people of France between 1815 and 1830, or make sense of the struggles which erupted around their ceremonies, we need to step back and take a longer view of the whole history of legitimate monarchy in France, of which the Restoration was but the final act. In particular we need to survey the repertoire of legal, symbolic, and ceremonial practices by which monarchy had been constituted over the centuries so as to understand the choices made by the missionaries and civil officials during the Restoration; for the struggles that erupted between them were the result of the complex and often contentious relationship between the church and state and, more broadly, between religion and politics, which over the centuries helped to strengthen the monarchy, and ultimately to erode its legitimacy.
The King’s Two Bodies According to Ernst Kantorowicz’s analysis of the theological origins of absolute monarchy, to understand the nature of legitimate monarchy in France at its height in the seventeenth century we need to turn our at-
tention back to the medieval period, when, borrowing the pontifical model of the church, the new nation-states began the long and complicated process of fashioning monarchy around “the king’s two bodies.” Ascribing to themselves the mystical powers previously reserved for popes and bishops, rulers of the late medieval and early modern period elevated the secular state to the sphere of mystery at the same time as they made themselves into Christlike embodiments of this new kingship.' To explain the development of the notion of the “two bodies of the king,” Kantorowicz turns to the ecclesiastical realm where this model
23
24 Politics as Theater initially appeared in the connection between the body of Christ and the spiritual body which was the church. Here the first critical shift took place in the twelfth century when “the Church was compelled to stress most emphatically not a spiritual or mystical, but the real presence of both the human and the divine Christ in the Eucharist.” * Finally culminating in the dogma of transubstantiation by 1215, this new emphasis on the real presence of Christ in the sacrament gave rise to “the development of the term corpus mysticum as a designation of the Church in its institutional and ecclesiological aspects.” 3 “In short, the expression ‘mystical body’ which originally had a liturgical or sacramental meaning, took on a sociological content.” * Hence we arrive at the twelfthcentury formula for the “two bodies of Christ” on which the two bodies of the king would be based: “Two are the bodies of Christ: the human material body which he assumed from the Virgin, and the spiritual collegiate body, the college of the Church.” > As soon as the designation of corpus mysticum emerged in the religious realm it was adopted in the secular realm: “When in the twelfth century the Church, including the clerical bureaucracy, established itself as the ‘mystical body of Christ,’ the secular world sector proclaimed itself as the ‘Holy Empire’.... ”° It was not long before rulers were equat-
ing themselves with Christ, in particular in relationship to the “body politic,” which was now also imbued with mystical qualities. Articulated by the Tudor judges in England, but also serving the French monarchs of the same period, the secular rendering of the two bodies of the king is summarized in the following: The King has two bodies, the one whereof is the Body natural . . . and in this
he is subject to Passions and Death as other Men are; and the other is the Body politic and the Members thereof are the subjects, and he and they together compose the corporation and he is incorporated with them, and they with him, and he is the Head, and they are the Members; and this Body is not subject to Passions and Death, for as to this Body, the king never dies.”
Between the thirteenth and the sixteenth centuries the French monarchy constituted itself according to these two distinct and yet related bodies of the king. That the king, like Christ, was God’s physical, corporeal representative on earth was expressed ceremonially with each coronation, with every procession which featured the physical body of the king, and especially in the ritual of touching for scrofula which physically demonstrated the sovereign’s godlike power to heal. Indeed, as Marc Bloch has shown, this royal touch was practiced in France up to the time
Introduction to Part I 25 of Louis XVI and attested to the fact that the sovereign’s power was supernatural, and that both his authority and his person were sacred.° That the model for the relationship between this “sacred” body of the king and the other body, the body politic, was likewise derived from the pontificalism developed since the twelfth century is clear from Lucas de Penna’s description of the French monarchy from the sixteenth century: “And just as men are joined together spiritually in the spiritual body, the head of which is Christ ..., so are men joined together morally and po-
litically in the respublica, which is the body the head of which is the Prince.” ? The mystical, sacred quality of this “second” body of the king, and its distinct identity from the first, was most clearly demonstrated in the funerals of the French Renaissance kings. Over the three centuries between the reigns of Phillip II] and Louis XIII, the French dramatized the existence of the two distinct, but related, bodies of the king in the peculiar funeral rituals performed on the occasions of the deaths of the monarchs. Their historian, Ralph Giesey, has emphasized the ceremonial apparatus used between 1270 and 1610 to distinguish between, on the one hand, the dead king and his successor (the physical, mortal body of the king) and, on the other, the immortal dignitas, or kingship, which was ritually invested in an effigy that liter-
ally “reigned” during the “ceremonial interregnum” existing between the death of one king and the coronation of the next. Legally, the new king had full power at the moment of his predecessor’s death, but the “mantle of dignity” did not cover him until he was crowned, and for the Renaissance kings this coronation did not take place until many weeks after the death of the previous monarch. During these intervening weeks both the mortal remains of the dead king and the physical body of his successor were kept from view, and all rituals focused on the wooden or waxen likeness of the deceased king, who was served meals, received visitors, and was even given a joyous entry. During this “ceremonial in-
terregnum” the king was still alive, albeit not in the corporeal sense: hovering around the effigy of the king was the mysticum or magnitus of a king which ne meurt jamais, or “never dies.” In Giesey’s words, “The
effigy was the basis for the speculation of the royal Dignity, separate from both the deceased king and the king-elect, . . . The royal Dignity does not die... .” 1 Geisey underscores the eucharistic quality of the effigy when he likens the royal funeral ceremony in Renaissance France to a “mystery play of the royal cult, kindred in spirit to the religious dramas of the Gothic period,” and offers the direct connection between “the royal
2.6 Politics as Theater funeral procession, where the effigy was carried under a canopy, and the Corpus Christi procession where the host was similarly borne,” a connection he notes was made by fifteenth-century chroniclers of these processions.'! Of the two bodies of the king, these ceremonies seemed therefore to emphasize the succession of magnitus, of the body politic, embodied in the hostlike effigy. But the dramatization of the distinction between the two bodies of the king gave way in 1610 to a new model of kingliness, which invested the physical body of the new king with the immortality and eucharistic qualities previously reserved for the effigy alone. For in this year, the new king, Louis XIII, assumed the full dignity of kingship within days of the death of his predecessor, not at a coronation orchestrated after weeks of ceremonies performed around an effigy of the dead king, but immediately, in a lit-de-justice performed just after his predecessor’s demise. In a move that betrays the absolutist pretensions of this and future kings, the “ceremonial interregnum,” signifying the reign of magnitus, separate from the physical body of the liv-
ing king, was closed; what emerged in its stead was a new model of kingship which acknowledged that “each king is ‘perfect king’ instantly upon the demise of the living king,’ . . . the dignity must be immanent
always in the living king and in him alone.” The closing of the gap between the two bodies of the king, the insistence upon the immortality of kingliness not separate from but inherent in the mortal body of the new living king, was emblematically portrayed in the device used to represent the succession of the new boyking, Louis XIV, in 1643. In his designs for the medal which would commemorate the lit-de-justice marking the new king’s succession, the royal artist chose the symbol of the phoenix. As Giesey explains, it was the perfect emblem for the ceremony which had eclipsed the funeral rituals of the Renaissance kings and had consolidated the full power, mystery, and sacrality of kingship in the person of the living king. ... the emblematic image is apt, and speaks for itself: the royal power passes instantaneously from the dead to the living, from the Corpse of Louis XIII, who on May r4th was laid to repose on his lit funébre at St.-Germaine-enLaye, to the infant Louis XIV reposing four days later on the lit-de-justice in the Parlement of Paris. The scene is reminiscent of the fabulous Phoenix, who set fire to his nest, which was his funerary bed, to be consumed in the flames while hatching himself to rise in a new incarnation from the ashes. What better metaphor to symbolize the perfect dynastic continuity which Bourbon absolutism had achieved? !3
Introduction to Part I 2.7 The next seventy-two years, during which Louis XIV and his supporters would erect a veritable cult around the body and image of the Sun King, would demonstrate how powerful this new mode of representing monarchy could be.
The Portrait of the King Louis XIII’s ceremonial innovations of 1610 pointed in the direction of Louis XIV’s consolidation and perfection of a conception of kingship which transformed the mortal, flesh-and-blood body of the king, and any image thereof, into a perfect representation of kingship according to the model of the Eucharist. This new logic of kingship motivated the fundamental changes in the monarchy’s ceremonial and symbolic practices during the reign of Louis XIV. What we see, in particular, is a twofold shift over the course of the seventeenth century: public ceremonies involving the physical presence of the king declined at the same time as the image of the all-powerful king, physically absent but, in the manner of the Eucharist, in his absence still present, proliferated throughout the realm, and became ever more effective at securing his subjects’ loyalty to and identity through his rule. On the level of ceremonial, Louis XIV progressively abandoned those rites of state by which his predecessors had regularly represented themselves directly before their subjects. In 1660 the king held his last royal
entry on the occasion of his marriage; after 1673 he held no Jit-dejustice. The rituals of touching for scrofula, receiving petitioners, of cel-
ebrating events within the royal family all took place within the confines of his court at Versailles. Certainly Versailles was not “private,” for within the context of the court at Versailles Louis XIV regularly exposed his person to a public ritual without end; yet there was a difference between directly participating in mass spectacles in the streets of his king-
dom and participating in the rituals at court which were publicized to the kingdom at large only through the engravings, medals, and wall almanacs produced expressly for this purpose. Increasingly, the people of France witnessed the public representation of monarchy through ceremonies and objects which invoked the king’s presence in spite of his more or less continuous absence from public view."
The widespread use of the fairly new ritual of the Te Deum exemplified, in the realm of ceremony, the new tactics adopted by the monarchy to represent itself throughout France. As Michel Fogel has shown,
28 Politics as Theater the Te Deum was introduced in 1587 by Henry III: it took the hymn of praise to God, which had been a part of rituals in which the king had directly participated—his coronation, or his entry into a city—and turned it into the nucleus of an autonomous ceremony, no longer requiring his presence. Combining the song of celebration of God with the reading of a psalm and prayers said for the king, the Te Deum was cele-
brated simultaneously throughout the kingdom to mark the historical triumphs of the monarchy. Thus, the birth of a successor, a military victory, or a peace which was profitable to the realm all became occasions to bring together all the orders and the bodies of society to offer thanksgiving to their king, even though he was not physically present at the ceremony. Proliferating his image, tied to a specific narrative of historical events, this ceremony could “render present everywhere that unique personage, the incarnation of the state, at the very moment when not deigning to show himself to his people, he chose absence.” !° Celebrated with increasing frequency over the course of the seventeenth century, the
Te Deum beautifully illustrates the shifting tactics used to represent monarchy in the age of absolutism.'® Just as the Te Deum focused attention on the historical events punctuating the life and reign of the monarch, so did images of Louis XIV in this period surrender the Christian and allegorical symbols, which had represented past kings, in favor of a more real and historical representation of the king. In particular, after the 1670s, one sees a decline in the solar and Apollonian myths previously used to represent the Sun King in favor of “real allegory,” that is, a system of emblematics which represented “the king in his own likeness and illustrating the history of his reign.” 1” At Versailles itself this was evident in the themes chosen for decorating the palace: in 1674 the Stair of the Ambassadors was decorated with a mural showing the great deeds of the king since his ascension to the throne, just as in 1678 the vaulted ceilings of the Galerie des Glaces represented the many triumphs of the monarch. Rather than rely
on Christian and mythological symbols and fables to attach glory and sacrality to the person of the king, “the history of the king dismissed fable, to become its own fable.” 18
Real historical images of the king proliferated throughout the kingdom during the reign of Louis XIV not only in the ceremony of the Te Deum but also in the broadsheets, wall calendars, commemorative medals and coins, and even marriage charters which brought historical
representations of the reigning monarch right into the homes of his
Introduction to Part I 2.9 French subjects.'!? These images, or “portraits of the king,” became the most effective media through which the monarchy expressed and consolidated the new conception of kingship perfected during the reign of Louis XIV. Under the king who declared, “L’Etat, c’est Moi,” we see the full and perfect transposition of the eucharistic model into the juridical and political realm. Just as the utterance “This is my body” produced a sacramental body of the species of bread and wine, visible on the altar as the real presence of Jesus Christ and as a representation of the spiritual body of the church, so did the portrait of the king, which expressed “It is Louis,” constitute the sacramental body of the monarchy while at the same time celebrating the king’s historical body and representing the king as the state, as the body politic, as the fictive body of the kingdom. In Louis Marin’s words, the transposition of the eucharistic model to the juridical and political domain, a transposition which brings to light the
historical gesture of absolutism, endowed the body of the king with the threefold visibility of Jesus: “as sacramental body it is visibly really present in the visual and written currencies; as historical body it is visible as represented, absence becomes presence again and again as ‘image’; as political body it is visible as symbolic fiction signified in its name, right, and law.” ° Finally joining in one flesh-and-blood body the two bodies of the king dramatized by the Renaissance funeral ceremonies, “the king’s portrait in its mystery, would be the sacramental body that would at once operate the political body of the prince and lift the historical body up into the political body.” 2! What Louis XIV thus accomplished at the height of his power was a system of political persuasion whereby his subjects’ belief in the king, and loyalty to, and identity with the whole system of monarchy could be ensured by the mere propagation of his image, devoid of all symbolic or allegorical camouflage. The countenance of the king—whether on a coin, a broadsheet, or a marriage charter— or the invocation of his name and his triumphs in a Te Deum all functioned to consolidate his absolute power over his subjects not by state violence but by “the submission of their captured imaginations.” If the portrait of the king could function as a “well-oiled machine for producing obedience without using brutal constraint,” it was because the system of practices and beliefs which prevailed in the seventeenth century offered a solid foundation for monarchy to be so construed.** Correspondingly, when the legitimacy of monarchy constituted according to the eucharistic structure failed in the eighteenth century, it was because changes in the institutional relationship between
30 Politics as Theater the church and state and the religious practices of the subjects of the monarch had combined to weaken this foundation.
The Spiritual and Institutional Foundations of Christian Monarchy Whether in its Renaissance incarnation as two separate and distinct bodies, or in its absolutist version of the portrait of the king, the legitimacy of monarchy rested on a belief system which accepted the sacred nature of the king and the increasingly sacramental quality of his mere image. This belief system was promoted by an arrangement whereby the
church and state sustained one another, depended upon one another, and collaborated to produce a system of laws and institutions which made it possible for subjects to accept the sacrality of kingship connected to the eucharistic model. The representatives of the Catholic church participated in state rituals such as the coronation or the Te Deum, \ed their congregations in prayers for the sovereign, and exhorted them to obey his edicts, which bore the hallowed formula “King by the grace of God.” #3 Clerics and jurists reaffirmed the religious character of the French monarchy in sermons, treatises, and polemics; they argued that Catholicism unified the country and legitimized the social and political order. As the bishop of Troyes explained, “the entire social system [comes] back to a great and single center, God, the principle and origin of all things, the sacred source from which derive both the prerogatives of authority and the duties of dependence.” ** Unequivocally representing the Most Christian Kings of France as “the visible images of the Divinity,” the clergy exhorted their parishioners to obey all of their superiors in the social and political order extending up the hierarchy to their king and then God, thus resting the entire network of authority and subordination “upon the foundation of the ancestral faith of the realm.” 2° The Crown correspondingly lent its support to the church. In Merrick’s words, “Since religion not only marked the way to salvation but also preserved social order, the crown made Catholicism a collective obligation rather than a private option in France. The divinely ordained king and his magistrates accordingly collaborated with the clergy
and defended the national faith through enforcement of sacramental conformity, censorship of unorthodox opinions, and punishment of irreligious and immoral conduct.”° Royal legislation made civil status
Introduction to Part I 31 dependent upon sacramental conformity: it required parents to send their children to cathechism; it compelled subjects to attest births, marriages, and deaths through participation in the baptismal, matrimonial, and mortuary rites of the national faith.2” The very constitution of the politico-religious order thus made Christian monarchy possible: the divine ordination of the Crown, the identification of the sovereign community with the person of the king, and the definition of French citizens as Catholic subjects were all corollaries of the collaboration between church and state which made it possible for the monarchs of France to rule absolutely by the seventeenth century. However, throughout the eighteenth century a combination of the “dechristianization” of the population and the prolonged disputes between the church and state over their appropriate jurisdiction in the spiritual and temporal spheres progressively undermined the juridical principles of kingship “by the grace of God.” By whatever standard one adopts, it seems clear that by the eighteenth century the laws regarding religion and morality had fallen into disuse. Historians have demonstrated quantitatively that this century saw more delayed baptisms, a growing indifference concerning burials, and omissions of religious invocations and intercessary clauses from wills. Novels, newspapers, historical and scientific works, and unorthodox books were on the rise, while the number of theological books in print declined. One saw a higher incidence of Sabbath-breaking, blasphemy, suicide, premarital sex, illegitimate births, abandoned children, contraception, adultery, and prostitution; at the same time there was less regularity in attendance at Sunday masses and fulfillment of paschal obligations, fewer confraternities and ordinations, and more friction between clergy and laity over tithes, ecclesiastical fees, parish expenditures, administration of the sacraments, observance of holy days, and standards of moral conduct.28 Many historians blame this trend on the Counter-Reformation of the seventeenth century, which was aided and abetted by the Most Christian Kings. Characterized by a more rigorous application of the sacraments, which ultimately excluded many parishioners from access to Holy Communion and absolution, the (usually Jansenist) curés doubtless turned a number of penitents away from the confessional and the Eucharist.2? With their collaborators in the state, the Counter-Reformation clerics also made a clear distinction between official Catholicism and
the popular practices of their parishioners. Forbidding unauthorized pilgrimages, suppressing popular holy days, carefully differentiating be-
32 Politics as Theater tween the sacred and profane by enclosing cemeteries, traditionally used for grazing, marketing, dancing, elections, and assignations, and, generally, by condemning the vulgar revelries of the peasantry, this movement underscored the difference between Catholicism in its official character and the practices embraced by the faithful. According to Merrick, “In-
asmuch as it made the clergy (tonsured, celibate, educated, and more commonly from outside the parish) more alien, and Christianity more repressive than before, the Counter-Reformation probably aggravated anticlericalism and caused disaffection from the rites of the national religion.” ° But this dechristianization can only be understood in the context of the struggles between the church and state which further undermined the role of Catholicism in the construction of kingship in the same period. The works of Dale Van Kley and Jeffrey Merrick on the religious con-
troversies of the eighteenth century agree that the protracted disputes involving the monarchy, the parliaments, and the clergy over the appropriate jurisdiction of the church and state in temporal and spiritual matters generally eroded the sacrality of monarchy by weakening the religio-political foundation on which it rested.* Both authors look closely at controversies from the eighteenth century in an effort to demonstrate how specific arguments made by clergymen, parliamentarians, and magistrates served to undermine the foundations of Christian monarchy. In other words, “secularization” and “dechristianization” were not, for these historians, the fruit of the Enlightenment, or some abstract shift in this direction, but rather the end result of a complex series of ne-
gotiations over the details of administering the kingdom in the eighteenth century which gradually desacralized monarchy by “disrupting the conjunction between religion and politics, discrediting divine ordination, and secularizing citizenship.” > In theory, the relationship between church and state as regards the spiritual and temporal lives of the subjects of France was clear; yet over the course of the eighteenth century, as a result of skirmishes over specific issues, one sees the practical extension of the state and its representatives into the spiritual sphere. In theory, purely spiritual matters clearly fell within the jurisdiction of the clergy. “The clergy alone formulated and interpreted the doctrines that embodied the work of God
and administered the sacraments that dispensed His grace,” and this fact was attested to by the royal legislation of 1695, which declared that all strictly spiritual matters “belonged to the ecclesiastical courts.” %° The king had always “unsheathed the temporal sword of coercion to en-
Introduction to Part I 33 force the doctrinal decisions and disciplinary judgment of the clergy,” *4 but the decisions remained the prerogative of the men of the collar. But over the course of the eighteenth century, the state and its representatives did more than merely support the church or “enforce” its decisions. In practical terms, they increasingly meddled in “spiritual matters”: they demanded the wholesale accountability of the clergy to the monarchy and its magistrates; the judges circumscribed ecclesiastical jurisdiction
in matters of doctrine and discipline by means of the comme d’abus, which allowed for appeals to the royal court in religious cases. Stepping in to prevent excommunication, or to insist on the giving of the sacraments, the magistrates invoked the standard of externality, arguing that
“subjects could not be excluded from the community of the faithful without being excluded from civil society as well.” *° In other words, rather than seeing the church and Catholicism as the key to social order and therefore defending the clergy’s autonomy in the business of constituting the spiritual body of the nation, the government by its increasing
meddling in spiritual matters showed that it had a new vision of the body politic as potentially disrupted by the divisive and exclusionary practices of the Catholic church. In harmony with this new vision of the social and political order, the eighteenth-century state generally undermined the church’s role in constituting the sovereign nation by progressively severing citizenship from
Catholicity and by retreating from its role as the guardian of public Catholicism. Parliamentarians increasingly argued that men and women were “born citizens before becoming Christians,” a position eighteenth-
century legislation underscored as the Crown progressively broke the connection between civil status and religious conformity: first circumventing the necessity of ecclesiastical certification of death in 1736 (then turned over to the police), then tacitly recognizing the legitimacy of Protestant marriages in the second half of the eighteenth century, the state finally completed the disjunction of Catholicity from citizenship when, in 1787, Louis XVI provided for the secular registration of births, mar-
riages, and deaths.*° If French subjects were civil citizens first, and Catholics later as a matter of choice, their government also refrained from prosecuting French men and women for the infraction of laws concerning irreligion and immorality. The Crown censored fewer and fewer works which could be deemed blasphemous. “Treatises on police in the second half of the eighteenth century acknowledged that blasphemy, if not sacrilege, had become ‘very common among ordinary people’ and admitted that the magistrates, who considered the laws too harsh, rarely
34 Politics as Theater punished it....” If occasional, spectacular demonstrations of the state’s willingness to defend the ancient religion of France still took place, the application of corporal punishment, and even execution for blasphemy, was increasingly the exception rather than the rule.*” Inclined to regard Sabbath-breaking and blasphemy as evidences of crudeness rather than criminality, “judges of the last decades of the ancien regime no longer shared Louis XIV’s assumption that such offenses against God automatically threatened society and required exemplary retribution in this world.” 3° Thus, “[t]he punishment of irreligion and immorality, like the enforcement of sacramental conformity, and the censorship of unorthodox opinions, declined in the eighteenth century.” 3? At the same time that French men and women turned away from the rites of Catholicism, the state increasingly defined its subjects as citizen-members of a secularized body politic. Controversies concerning religion and politics also served to erode the sacrality of kingship by exposing the monarch himself to criticism and by questioning the givenness of the relationship between the king and his kingdom.*° When, in the eighteenth century, bishops and parliamentarians engaged in various controversies, they did not repudiate kingship by the grace of God in principle; however, they did directly attack the king’s ecclesiastical and fiscal policies. They justified their critiques by invoking standards of orthodoxy and lawfulness, and in the process undermined the assumed unaccountability of the Crown. If, in the seventeenth century, kings regularly declared it blasphemous to dispute the absolute prerogative of the Crown, in the eighteenth century, as a result of the king’s controversies with the clergy and the Parliament, criticizing the king and his policies came to assume the status of a right. Throughout the eighteenth century not only the specific policies of the king but also his personal behavior and character became the focus of widespread attacks. Whether reiterating the political arguments of parliamentarians in broadly diffused pamphlets, or attacking the purportedly licentious behavior of the king and queen, or publicizing what the monarchs of the eighteenth century themselves acknowledged as a failure to live up to the religious standards of the Most Christian Kings, the increasingly widespread criticism of the eighteenth century served to desacralize the monarchs, setting the stage, as it were, for the demise of the first of the king’s two bodies.*!
Kingship, the sovereignty of the nation as embodied in and through monarchy (or the second body of the king), was similarly undermined
Introduction to Part I 35 in the eighteenth century. When parliamentarians and clergymen alike, although on different sides of many debates, claimed to represent the “public interest” in their disputes with the Crown, or demanded respect for royal authority on the basis of its benefits to the kingdom rather than “the duties of religion,” or when they insisted that taxation required the consent of the nation, they fundamentally challenged the very nature of kingship which had reigned in France for at least five centuries. All of these arguments “nurtured the concepts of sovereign community dis-
engaged from the person of the monarch.”*? Not only, according to these arguments, was the kingdom no longer coterminous with the sacred body of an individual living king; these disputes moved French citi-
zens in the direction of imagining that they could be “joined together morally and politically in the respublica,” a sacred body politic possessing the full mystery and sacrality of kingship, without a king.*
The “Ceremonial Interregnum,” 1789-1815: The Demise of the King’s Two Bodies If the king’s flesh-and-blood body had been subjected to criticism over the course of the eighteenth century, the execution of Louis XVI on the scaffold in 1793 clearly marked the ultimate demise of the corporeal body of the king of France. The connection between the criticism which desacralized the body and the actual act of execution which ended its life has been demonstrated by historians who have charted the sharp rise in attacks on Louis XVI and Marie Antoinette in the years leading up to 1793, as bad fathers and mothers and as despotic, traitorous rulers whose very existence threatened the life of the fully separate and indeed more important “body politic.” This was especially true after the flight to Varennes in 1791 forced the nation to question its ruler’s devotion
to kingship as it had been reconceived, since 1789, as constitutional monarchy.** With his beheading on the scaffold on January 21, 1793, the French people finally killed the king’s mortal body, and for the first time since 1610 there was a “ceremonial interregnum”: explicitly denying the possibility that the magnitus of the body politic resided in either the dead body of Louis XVI or any royal successor, the revolutionaries spent the next seven years orchestrating its embodiment in the nation and working to transfer the mantle of dignity through the new secular rituals and symbols of republicanism.*5
36 Politics as Theater Recent work on the cultural politics of the revolutionary decade has shown that the revolutionaries tried to complete a process, begun earlier in the century, of transferring sacrality from the eucharistic body of the king, sustained by the religio-political foundations of Christian mon-
archy, to the secular nation, constituted through the new calendar and civic rituals of republicanism. Just as absolute monarchy had “hallowed” kingship over the centuries, and gradually engendered the loyalty and quasi-religious devotion of its subjects, first as Catholics, but increasingly as citizens, so did the revolutionaries continue the “dechristianization” of France, at the same time as they used oaths, symbols, and festivals to tie the people to the nation through the new secular religion of republicanism. The second “body” of the king was thus not killed so much as transformed beyond recognition: if it possessed the magnitus and mystery of Old Regime “kingship,” it was now defined by the new universals of “liberty, equality, fraternity,” symbolized by tricolor flags and liberty trees, and enacted in festivals celebrating the historical events of the fledgling revolutionary nation, all of which combined to “sacralize” this radically different body politic.*® In their efforts to find the proper symbols, forms of dress, and festivals by which to transform Christian subjects into citizens, and trans-
fer the sacrality of Christian kingship to a secular republican nation, the revolutionaries promoted a proliferation of practices which would endure as a critical challenge to monarchy. For almost a decade French
men and women lived in a world where sovereignty had been thoroughly severed from any king or notion of kingship, and their daily lives were full of tangible reminders of this new order of things. During the following fifteen years, under the rule of Bonaparte, the multiplication of symbolic alternatives to Old Regime monarchy continued, now with imperial and new dynastic claims mixed in with the new sacrality
of the republican, sovereign nation-at-arms. Over the course of the twenty-five years which comprised the “ceremonial interregnum” be-
tween the last Bourbon monarch of the eighteenth century and the next of the nineteenth, the givenness of monarchy had thus been thoroughly undermined. As viable alternatives organized the social and political order, first during the Revolution and later during the Consulate and Empire, ideology was brought into being.*” The physical and mental landscape of France, thoroughly transformed by the experience of these twenty-five years, bore testimony to this enduring legacy of the Revolution.
Introduction to Part I 37 Tartuffe or Politics as Theater Moliére’s Tartuffe, written and performed at the height of absolutism, offers both a powerful example of the working of the “portrait of the king” in the late seventeenth century and a way of understanding its decline, which I have just traced. Hovering about the play, but never actually appearing on stage, was the image of the king. Despite his continuous absence from the scene, the king clearly ruled, “by the grace of God,” a fact which was proven by his omniscient ability to see all that went on his kingdom and to step in, when necessary, to ensure its proper functioning. The resolution to the crisis in Orgon’s little kingdom, made possible by the clear-sighted intervention of the Prince against Tartuffe in act 5, makes the play a testimonial to the benefits of absolutism under a king whose justice and responsible paternalist rule protects his subjects and ensures that the proper order of things will always be maintained. Yet, at the same time that Moliére’s play offered a language for applauding the divinely ordained absolute monarchy of Louis XIV, its depiction of the well-meaning but despotic father, Orgon, and the perverted and deceptive reign of the hypocrite, Tartuffe, offered a critical language which could be applied to question a ruler who failed to live up to the standards still clearly maintained by the absent “Prince.” Fur-
thermore, the role the characters on the stage played in organizing against their despotic ruler, Orgon, in the name of restoring proper order to their kingdom, clearly severed the absolute connection between king and kingship and underscored the possible separation of sovereignty from the person of the king should he fail to properly fulfill his role as a benevolent ruler of his subjects. Clearly these two critical perspectives on monarchy—that individual monarchs could err and be deserving of criticism, and that the sovereignty of any king was dependent on his satisfying the needs of his subjects, and must therefore be an expression somehow of their “will”—were both widespread and honed throughout the eighteenth century in the context of specific disputes between the Crown, the parliamentarians, the magistrates, and the clergy. If Moliére’s comedy foreshadowed the critique of monarchy that would dominate in the eighteenth century, and ultimately contribute to the fall of the king in the Revolution, it was more prescient still in its articulation of the crisis of legitimacy facing the Bourbon monarchy when it returned to the throne in 1815. It was Moliére’s critical attention to the gap which all too often existed between appearance and reality that
38 Politics as Theater was relevant in this regard, for by underlining the often theatrical quality of authority he gave his audience the tools for questioning the very
representation of monarchy. Could the “portrait of the king” represented in his absence on the stage be taken as exactly equivalent to the real, flesh-and-blood king living at court in Versailles? Did the vast spectacle of kingship produced at Versailles serve as a mask which distorted the real nature of kingship? While these questions had resonance for some in the late seventeenth century, and for many more in the eighteenth century, it was after the Revolution and the Empire that the full value of this critique of monarchy would be appreciated. For what could be more relevant for the citizens of France between 1815 and 1830 than Tartuffe’s own words when applied to their monarch? “Why, after all, should you have faith in me? / How can you know what I might do, or be? /...Ah, no, don’t be deceived by hollow shows. / I’m far, alas, from being what men suppose; / Though the world takes me for a man of worth / ’'m truly the most worthless man on earth.” *® If monarchy could exist at all after the events of the past twenty-five years, it could do so only as the result of an elaborate staging: the efforts of the church and state to represent monarchy would illustrate this point and, in response, the subjects of the monarch would turn to Tartuffe both to expose and to reconcile themselves to this reality of modern political life.
CHAPTER ONE
The “Counterrevolutionary” State and the Politics of Oubli (Forgetting)
On the r7th of June in 1816 in Yvetot, a small city in the north of France, the subprefect organized a public ceremony in honor of the marriage of the king’s nephew, the duc de Berry. The festivities of the day began in the church, where a mass was said in honor of the royal wedding.
After the mass, those assembled were escorted by the local National Guard to the city hall, in front of which the subprefect made a long speech explaining the next part of the day’s ceremony: the destruction by burning of “sinister emblems of revolutionary times” which the authorities had been collecting over the previous six months. As he pointed to tricolor flags and cockades, busts of Napoleon, and other revolution-
ary reminders, the speaker pronounced, “Let us destroy forever these signs of agitation which introduce, among us, discord, license, and unhappily the taste, or at least too great an indifference to crime.” ! The subprefect went on to contrast these symbols with those of the restored monarchy. Where revolutionary symbols stood for all that was evil, impure, and bloodthirsty, those of the monarchy represented all that was good and peaceful. He focused at length on the shortcomings of the tricolor flag as compared with its pure white equivalent. “What demon, in effect, could imagine substituting three colors, which go together so badly, for the simple and unique color which, until then had united us all under the sweetest of regimes? Why this mixture of red and blue, emblems of bloody furor, with white which has always been the image of candor?” He lauded the return of the drapeau blanc, so simple 39
40 Politics as Theater and pure, representing “by its innocent color the most lovable and sweetest qualities.”? The speech, according to the subprefect, “was wel-
comed by unanimous acclamations of a large crowd, representing people of both sexes and all ages, brought together to witness the destruction of these proscribed objects.” 3 As he spoke of the fire which would soon destroy these sinister emblems, the subprefect revealed the many purposes of the ceremony he was orchestrating—the purification of the political landscape of revolutionary symbols, the removal from the hearts and minds of his onlookers of the very memories and feelings such objects evoked, as well as the rekindling of their passion for the true and legitimate leader of France. “May the flames which we are about to ignite to destroy these impure objects, be themselves the emblem of that sacred fire which is making daily progress in our hearts, and consuming there that mélange of lugubrious memories and sentiments which continue to rob many among us of the happiness they could enjoy if they could appreciate all that providence has deigned to do for us in returning our legitimate King!” + As the subprefect ended his speech against the background of the crackling fire, the
crowd screamed, “Long Live the King!” while the National Guard “played the most loved songs of the French.” > This ceremony is known to us because the subprefect of Yvetot sent
a report carefully describing the proceedings as well as a copy of his speech to the prefect of his department. He was proud of his initiative, of his original scheme for organizing a public burning of revolutionary reminders on a day commemorating a great royal wedding. However, if the timing of this official’s ceremony was distinctive, or if the contents of his speech were particularly edifying, in his orchestration and extensive
account of a public destruction of revolutionary and imperial emblems in the summer of 1816, this subprefect showed himself to be a typical, if particularly enthusiastic, local representative of the Second Restoration government, following orders regarding the mise-en-place, or “putting-into-place” of the regime, in the wake of the Hundred Days.
The Symbolic Mise-en-Place and the Many Meanings of Oubli In keeping with Article 11 of the Charter of 1814, the First Restoration government (in power until the Hundred Days) was guided by a spirit of
The “Counterrevolutionary” State AI oubli— oblivion, disregard, or forgetting —with regard to the past. This
important article read, “All investigations of opinions and votes expressed before the Restoration are forbidden. The same disregard [oubli] is demanded of both the courts and the citizenry.” ® In practical terms,
this translated into an effort during the First Restoration to revive the symbols, the calendar, and many of the rituals of the Old Regime, but without a direct confrontation with their revolutionary or imperial counterparts. But Napoleon’s return in the Hundred Days proved that this conciliatory policy was far too dangerous. It became impossible simply to “pardon” the past loyalties of given individuals or to “ignore” the
power of tricolor flags, revolutionary songs, or busts of Napoleon to rally together opposition to the government. So in direct contradiction to the spirit of Article 11 of the Charter, the Second Restoration government embarked upon an active campaign to accomplish another kind of oubli with regard to the period before 1815: compulsory forgetting. Immediately upon his return to France after the Hundred Days, King Louis XVIII indicated the first shift away from the original policy of oubli in a speech wherein he revealed his intention to prosecute the instigators of the recent plot against the government. The government could
continue to ignore the actions of the majority of “misguided Frenchmen,” but could do the same for the organizers of the Hundred Days only at its own peril. I promise . . . to pardon those misguided Frenchmen for all that has happened since the day that I left Lille, .. . But the blood of my children has been spilled as a result of a treason such as the world has never seen. . . . I must therefore, for the dignity of my throne, for the interest of my people, for the peace of
Europe, exempt from pardon the instigators and authors of this horrible trauma. They will be subjected to the vengeance of the laws.’
This singling out of “instigators” of the Hundred Days was soon broadened, however, to include bureaucrats who overzealously performed their duties under Napoleon’s government. The purges of from one-third to one-half of all officeholders affected any individuals whose pasts were tainted by revolutionary activities.® Likewise, the disbanding of the military and the creation of a huge population of soldiers placed on “demipension” fit squarely within this policy of protecting the realm from potential traitors.? But where the Second Restoration government truly abandoned its initial policy of oblivion with regard to the past was in its extraordinary attack upon the symbols, rituals, and practices which
42 Politics as Theater reminded the population not only of the recent return of Napoleon but also of the full twenty-five years during which the Bourbon monarchs had ceased to reign in France. Early in the fall of 1815 we see evidence of the first steps in the direction of this ambitious campaign in the scattered local efforts to root out every symbol or practice that carried some reminder of any regime other than that of the present king. In September and October of that year, local officials began to order their police commissioners and gendarmes to watch out for and severely punish any expression of public support for Napoleon, either by public pronouncements (“Long Live the Emperor” being the most common) or by the distinctive emblems people wore, “such as tricolor cockades and eagles.” 1° But as the arrété (decree) of the mayor of Bordeaux from October of 1815 demonstrates, officials did not stop at prohibiting public, individual expressions of direct support for the past emperor. Rather, anticipating the kind of effort which would be adopted nationally by November of the same year, the mayor requested: first, that everyone possessing objects, placards, or writings decorated with signs of Napoleon, or any government other than that of the present king, bring them to the H6tel de Ville within five days; second, that those with such articles in their stores likewise turn them over to the authorities within the same five-day period; third, that after five days the police commissioners make visits to the homes of those people who, because of their profession, might have such objects in their possession, and if such objects were found, to seize them immediately; and fourth, that merchants or others who tried to sell such objects were to be arrested immediately and brought before the police tri-
bunal “for having provoked citizens to revolt.”'! In the majority of cases, local officials did not begin to prosecute offenders of such seditious acts until after November, when, in response to a series of laws and directives from the national government, the mise-en-place was pursued in earnest. On the 11th of November the national government passed a law “related to the repression of seditious cries and provocations to revolt,” which clearly outlined the legal basis on which local officials could pursue “troublemakers” seeking to disturb the current order of things by drawing attention to the signs and emblems representing any government other than that of the current king. It was declared illegal to don tricolor cockades, carry tricolor flags, sing revolutionary songs, or keep images of the usurper or symbols of the Empire in public places.’ The
The “Counterrevolutionary” State 43 penalties threatened for infractions were to be stiff, much stiffer than the sentences handed down for analogous offenses under Napoleon. Sedi-
tious acts considered to be mere misdemeanors under Napoleon were treated as crimes in the Second Restoration, and the penalties were correspondingly tougher. Whereas a “down with Napoleon” during the Empire would have earned an offender a sentence somewhere between five to six days and six months, in 1816 a “down with Louis XVIII, long
live Napoleon,” the waving of the wrong flag, or trafficking in goods with republican or Bonapartist emblems would have merited between three months and one to five years in prison.’ In theory, therefore, a strict ban on public representations of anything but the current regime was in place by November of 1815. However, in its early efforts to secure the future of the fragile monarchy, the Second Restoration government went well beyond stiff laws which rendered illegal the accoutrements of Bonapartism. In the fall of 1815 the minister of police ordered public officials all over France, in big cities and in the tiniest communes, to gather together all reminders of the terrible years of revolutionary turmoil and destroy them. In a circular sent to November to all prefects, the minister of police focused first and foremost on the need to remove busts and portraits of Napoleon still standing in public places. Later in the letter, the minister broadened the range of objects to be seized: “These measures must extend to all prohibited signs such as flags, cockades, etc. Take care to
make disappear from all public places and their surrounding areas all emblems of the same genre.” In what should be seen as a tribute to the presumed potency of these revolutionary objects, the minister stressed the inadequacy of merely concealing them from the public: “They have been it is true, concealed from public view, and relegated to storage rooms. But their conservation is itself a scandal which must be stopped. For it maintains the criminal hopes of the government’s enemies; it serves as a text for malevolent commentaries.” Thus the minister informed the prefects of their duty to make such “monuments of adulation entirely disappear. . . . Give the promptest orders in your district that they be transferred without delay to the capital of your prefecture, and as they arrive, you will take care to destroy them.” As concerned as the minister of police appeared to be to root out and destroy every physical reminder of all governments other than the reigning monarchy, his further instructions demonstrate his appreciation of the need for discretion in carrying out this campaign. The minister en-
44 Politics as Theater couraged prefects to see that an “enlightened sensibility preside in these destructions.” In particular, he seemed concerned that the prefects differentiate between “works of art” and “tasteless objects which attest at once to the baseness and incapacity of their authors.” The prefects were to set aside potential works of art, signal the minister regarding their existence, and wait for orders regarding their fate. Care was also to be taken when encouraging private individuals and private establishments to give up their seditious objects, although the private sphere was not exempt from the officials’ orders. The minister instructed his prefects that “your surveillance must not be limited to public establishments.”
But here again the minister qualified his instructions, distinguishing between the treatment to be accorded individuals who possessed such objects, but were not using them as political weapons against the government, and those people who were using them to keep the revolutionary spirit alive. Echoing the speech of the king from July of 1815, the minister recommended leniency for the masses (or in the words of the king, the “misguided Frenchmen”) for whom such objects were not the signs of political protest, as opposed to the instigators or troublemakers who were likely to use them to bring down the regime. The former group was to be treated well, their objects were to be respected as private property, and persuasion alone was to be employed in their confiscation and/or destruction. “Invite the people who are likely to have in
their homes cockades, engravings, stamps, imperial seals, etc. to turn them in to the authorities.” But the latter group deserved no such treatment: “This consideration you owe only to those who wouldn’t use these proscribed images badly; you must, on the contrary, treat with severity those who would use such objects as a means of stirring up the
spirit of opposition.” The task set before the prefects was immense. Removing and destroying tricolor flags and busts of Napoleon which adorned public buildings and replacing them with appropriate monarchical symbols and statues already required a significant amount of work and money. But the goal of collecting privately owned revolutionary and imperial memorabilia was extraordinarily ambitious. During the Revolution the government consciously multiplied the symbols and objects by which the people of France could identify with and become attached to their new government. Adding a new repertoire of imperial symbols, Napoleon did the same. During both the Revolution and the Empire the selling of such objects was big business. The articles of everyday life—plates, chamber
The “Counterrevolutionary” State A5 pots, tobacco cases, fabric—were adorned with emblems of liberty, eagles, and other examples of signes prohibés,” and sold by merchants all over the country for twenty-five years. The task which the minister of
police set before the prefects of France in 1815 was nothing less than the collection and destruction of this vast quantity of public and private objects.
This simple circular of November 1815 set an extraordinary administrative effort into motion: prefects obeyed the orders issued by the minister of police, sent circulars to their subordinates, the subprefects, who, in turn, communicated with their subordinates, the mayors, police commissioners, and gendarmes, who saw that the orders were executed
in communes all over France. In response to this order the symbolic mise-en-place was carried out in most French towns between the fall of 1815 and the summer of 1816. The police archives bear precious evidence of this extraordinary campaign: correspondence between public officials, inventories of seditious objects collected and destroyed, reports on local ceremonies including, occasionally, the texts of speeches offered on these special occasions—all offer an extraordinary glimpse into the
nuts and bolts of reasserting legitimate monarchy in the wake of the Revolution and Empire.'® The differential zeal with which local officials carried out the mise-
en-place can be gleaned from the instructions they conveyed to their subordinates. For example, in a letter addressed to the mayors of his city, the subprefect of Rouen (less than two weeks after the initial order from the minister of police to his prefect) reiterated his superior’s instructions but took the initiative to see that public establishments received the utmost attention since they were known to be important centers of political opposition. Thus he ordered: “If you learn that such objects exist in private homes but especially in public establishments such as inns, cabarets, and cafés, you can . . . demand their destruction.” 1” While this subprefect seemed to share the minister of police’s desire to respect private property when trying to persuade such individuals to give up their possessions, he apparently did not agree with his superior’s distinction between people making good or bad use of the seditious objects. Rather, like the mayor of Bordeaux who began a simi-
lar campaign back in October, the subprefect wanted a report in all cases where individuals did not turn them over to government officials. “You will use, first, all manner of persuasion, and if in spite of your invitations, someone refuses to destroy these emblems of an abhorred
46 Politics as Theater government, you will let me know immediately.” !® But usually the orders from prefects to subprefects and from subprefects to mayors were less zealous and merely recapitulated the orders of the minister of police, stressing only the minimum actions required. Typical was the circular
from the prefect of the Dordogne to his subordinates, sent out more than a month after receiving his own orders from the minister, requesting merely that they “take the measures necessary to see that the emblems representing the past regime are effaced and replaced by those of the legitimate government.” ! Throughout the spring of 1816 the minister of police continued to write to prefects all over France, following up on his initial orders of November. In some cases the letters simply requested a report: “I would like for you to inform me, upon receipt of this letter, of the results of the measures you have demanded, . . . and especially if you are sure that the tricolor flag has been destroyed in all of the communes in your department.” ° But often the follow-up letters to the prefects suggested noncompliance on the part of local officials and the fact that someone in the local arena had informed the minister of the continued display of revolutionary and/or imperial symbols. In February, for example, the minister of police reprimanded the same prefect in a letter which began, “I am informed that tricolor flags which have been removed from public edifices are being conserved in some city halls.” 2! In another example, from the Dordogne, one mayor vehemently denied the reproach contained in a previous letter from his superior regarding a failure to destroy a local liberty tree.” What was actually involved when these orders were translated into action? In general, it seems clear that the authorities focused most of their attention on those signes prohibés found on official government
buildings, town squares, and other key public gathering places. We know this because local officials often prepared careful lists of all objects collected, and they only rarely mentioned objects which had been privately owned.?3 To make sure that such objects were removed from all
public places, search teams composed of gendarmes were sent from town to town “to know whether or not there still exist emblems or signs of the government of the usurper.”** Occasionally a special effort was made to seek out a specific article, in the event of a denunciation. For example, in April of 1816, the mayor of Buchy in the Seine-Inférieure informed his prefect that “we went to the home of Monsieur le Curé of our town, having been informed of the continued existence of two little tricolor flags which were used in processions for public holidays.” ?°
The “Counterrevolutionary” State 47 Similarly, in the Oise, gendarmes were sent to a church in Beauvais which was said to house emblems of the previous government.*° Local officials often wrote in to their prefects, and even to the minister of police, to ask for advice on specific objects. The curator of the art
museum in Rouen wrote to his prefect requesting guidance in sorting out what was seditious in his collection from what was true art.*” The prefect of the Marne asked for similar instructions concerning three busts of Napoleon, while the prefect of the Nord asked for advice about a painting of Napoleon by Robert LeFebvre which might be considered “art.” 28 Despite the clear instructions about confiscating private property, one local gendarme asked his prefect what he could do about a huge eagle he found publicly displayed in a local café without infringing upon the owner’s property rights. The prefect instructed him to suggest that the café owner remove the eagle from public view. The gendarme did so and the café owner complied.”? The problem of merchants selling revolutionary and imperial objects
was alluded to in local arrétés, but was not discussed very much in official correspondence in the first year of the Restoration. Booksellers were mentioned in regard to one particular genre of publication—catechisms and books of religious songs. Special circulars were sent out to
prefects concerning a catechism “in use in all churches in France, in which a whole chapter is consecrated to the devotion and attachment due to Napoleon’s person.” ° The texts with the problematic chapter were already in use in churches and schools, but were also still being sold in bookstores all over the country. To rectify this situation subprefects and mayors were respectively informed to “be sure that visits are made immediately, in your entire district, to publishing houses, to bookstores, and to any merchant selling books, either by the commissioner
responsible for inspecting bookshops, or by any other officer of the police.” 34 Once at the bookstores, the officials were supposed to find the catechisms and cartonner (remove) the problematic chapter. From the reports sent in by various officials, it is clear that this vague instruction was interpreted in at least two different ways. In some cases the catechisms were actually destroyed. But in most cases it seems that the seditious chapter was crossed out, or the pages lacerated; thus “rectified,” the books were then left on the shelf to be sold. The “rectification” of texts was also carried out in schools and churches where the catechisms were already in use.*? Similar actions were taken with regard to song books containing pieces in honor of Napoleon or his family. In these cases single pages were simply torn out.*?
48 Politics as Theater Once officials all over France had collected busts of Napoleon and tricolor flags, lacerated the appropriate chapters of catechisms, and given a careful accounting of what they had found, what they chose to do with the objets proscrits varied widely from place to place. That the objects were to be collected and not just concealed, but actually destroyed, was clear enough in the instructions from the minister of police. But the precise form this destruction was to take was never clearly specified. Nowhere, in any of the government directives, was a ceremony of the type evoked at the beginning of this chapter recommended. In fact, within the wide range of activities one finds described in the rich correspondence between local officials and their superiors in this period, the subprefect of Yvetot’s public ceremony comes out looking extremely zealous. This is especially true if that ceremony is compared to the actions of an official such as the mayor of a small town in the Dordogne who not
only failed to report on any such elaborate public burning but did not even bother to replace the tricolor flag with a drapeau blanc. He explained in a report that the weather had made this unnecessary: “upon the return of our King Louis XVIII, the tricolor flag was almost completely destroyed by the temperament of the weather; all that remained was the white piece in the middle, so we removed the red and blue pieces which were next to it.” 34 A somewhat more enthusiastic destruction of revolutionary symbols took place in another small commune where a town council meeting spontaneously became the occasion for the burning of a recently discovered tricolor flag. At the meeting the mayor announced the continued existence of “an old tricolor flag from the time of the Terror.” The mayor had already shredded the flag but suggested in the meeting that it be burned. The members of the town council, “by a spontaneous movement, demanded that a fire be ignited immediately
before the city hall, and in their presence; this was carried out to the unanimous cries of Long Live the King.” 3° There was apparently no speech, no advance notice, and so no large crowd—just a simple burning of one flag by the assembled city council. Within the city of Rouen, one of the mayors organized the destruction of busts of Napoleon with a similar lack of pomp. A specialist was hired to destroy the sculptures and their molds in the courtyard of the city hall, but the only ones present other than the officials were the “crowd of curious onlookers” who happened to be in the neighborhood at the time.*° Most often the reports sent in to the prefects, and then later to the minister of police in Paris, resemble that of the subprefect of Dieppe, who merely assured his superiors that he had carried out his orders and
The “Counterrevolutionary” State 49 enjoyed “the certitude that not a single sign which would serve as a reminder of the government of Bonaparte could be found, anywhere in my arrondissement, and that all such emblems had been destroyed by fire.” 3” Prefects often spoke for their whole department when they summarized the results of the ceremonies; the report of the prefect of the Marne is typical, with its simple declaration that having followed the orders forwarded to him on the 24th of November, “busts were destroyed, along with seals and stamps representing the eagle, tricolor flags were burned publicly in many places to the cry of Long Live the King.” ?° It is hard to glean from such a formulaic report exactly what that burning was like. Was it planned in advance as a big public spectacle as in the case of Yvetot? Did the official in question simply decide on the spur of the moment to burn whatever objects were in his possession? Were special days chosen for these events? What was said as the fire was ignited? How many spectators were there? How many of them really said “Vive le Roi”? What were people thinking as they watched these events? It is not possible to say exactly how the symbolic mise-en-place was carried out or received in every town throughout France between the fall of 1815 and the summer of 1816. But based on these reports it is possible to sketch a “typical” ceremony, as well as some variations added by different officials. Using the lists officials prepared of the seditious objects which they collected, it is possible to give an idea of what was hauled before spectators to be burned or otherwise destroyed. Drawing upon the reports of local officials, the few speeches which were actually recorded and saved, and the initial orders from their superiors in Paris, it is possible to reconstruct the logic which guided these ceremonies. Fig-
uring out how spectators actually responded to such ceremonies is a more difficult proposition. It was hardly in the interest of any given official to admit a negative response, and indeed what one finds almost universally in these reports is the assurance that everyone assembled unanimously shouted “Long Live the King!” Yet the richness of the archival material on the ceremonies themselves, the inventories of the objects collected, and the reports on seditious acts proffered against the regime in the years that followed this campaign all combine to allow us to imagine even these elusive responses to the mise-en-place.
For the public ceremony which represented the culmination of months of efforts on behalf of the mise-en-place, burnings in the town square were most common, although in some cases burnings were carried out in the places where the offending reminder was found. The ceremonies often began with a mass, as in the case of Yvetot. Or news of
50 Politics as Theater the ceremony was announced in the church where sermons about the mise-en-place were also given.*? The whole community was allegedly present, although the procés-verbaux of these ceremonies, when read closely, reveal that only those civil servants required to come were usually in attendance. A procession was common, often leading from the
church to the town square, as was a speech by the most important official present, replete with the language of the need to “purify” France
of its past. Music and bands of the type described in the Yvetot ceremony seemed to have been rare. But in almost all cases, whether a fire was ignited or busts of Napoleon smashed, cries of “Vive le Roi” were purportedly emitted by the assembled crowd. Some reports were more enthusiastic than others, as in the case of the prefect of the CharenteInférieure, who not only noted that everywhere in his department the proscribed symbols were destroyed, but that in many places, “their destruction was a real public festival, and furnished the inhabitants with an occasion to manifest their joy at the return of their Legitimate King, their love for this excellent monarch, and their sincere devotion to his august Dynasty.” *° The dates chosen for these ceremonies demonstrated some creativity.
The ceremony in Yvetot, as described earlier, took place in conjunction with a royal wedding. One ceremony in the Dordogne took place on the 14th of July. Someone had tried to fly a tricolor flag on Bastille Day in 1816, and the local authorities were quick to publicly destroy it where it was hung.*! Anniversaries of important events in the Hundred Days were seized by many officials as an opportunity for a mise-en-place ceremony. Both the prefect of the Loire and the prefect of the Somme chose the 20th of March, in the words of the former, “the day of odious memory, for the destruction of all of the signs of revolution, assuming that if this destruction were public and solemn, it could have a salutary effect on the spirit of the people.” *? In the Gers the prefect chose a date marking the local history of the Hundred Days in Auch. On the 5th of April
in 1816, he described the ceremony in the capital of his department: “Yesterday was the anniversary of the fatal day when [local military authorities] substituted the colors of Bonaparte for the flag of the King. ... I believed it necessary to choose this day to solemnly destroy all revolutionary and imperial signs.” *? Later in his letter he proclaimed his cere-
mony a success: “I expect that the sincere and boisterous joy of this day will impose silence for a long time to come on those rumormongers
and prophets of doom” who would otherwise trouble our peace and security.*4
The “Counterrevolutionary” State 51 Broad participation in these ceremonies was explicitly encouraged, according to various reports by local officials. In a small town in the Basses-Pyrénées, the mayor not only encouraged his citizens to personally deposit their proscribed emblems representing “anarchy and despotism” at the city hall; he also “required each inhabitant to bring his own portion of wood necessary for producing the bonfire in the public place where these emblems would be destroyed.” The ceremony itself was apparently very successful. Officers of the Departmental Legion followed their chief in a gesture reminiscent of the Old Regime, when they “unsheathed their swords as if to swear their lives in support and defense of the throne of our kings.” Later in the evening the civil and military officials in the town hosted a banquet where toasts were proffered “to legitimate monarchy, and to each of the Princes and Princesses of the Royal Family.” *° Other reports from the same department underscore the apparent popularity of these ceremonies. In Bayonne it seems that the burning of seals, flags, and other signs of the usurper became the occasion for spontaneous dancing: “hardly had the flame been ignited when the cries of Vive le Roi were heard with a new enthusiasm, and several members of the National Guard, who were by then accompanied by their wives, abandoned their arms in order to dance some rounds around the fire.” The whole crowd soon followed suit: “the entire population of Bayonne was soon on their feet, attracted by the unanimous desire to see these last emblems of our unhappiness, doomed to execution, disappear.” * Local officials varied in their views about how useful it was to expose the population to the signes prohibés which had been collected over the months since November. At one extreme of the spectrum was the ceremony from Orthez (another enthusiastic example from the BassesPyrénées), where the mayor organized a special procession to carry the “impure signs” to the Place St-Pierre, where they were placed “in state,” as it were, for the population to come and view them for two hours before their destruction: “The emblems, having been placed on the pyre [at 2 0’clock], remained exposed to the gaze of the public until 4 o’clock, the hour at which we left the sous-préfecture [and orchestrated their ceremonial destruction].” 4” The prefect of the Saone-et-Loire chose, on the contrary, not only to avoid laying out the objects for public scrutiny but also to avoid any public ceremony around their destruction. His reasoning interestingly was related to the extremely small quantity of such objects which had been turned in. He thought a public display of their
destruction “might have offered a very good example if one had to
52 Politics as Theater throw on the flames a considerable mass of objects, ... but that it would produce a very bad effect, being executed with only a small number of
articles.” He chose instead to have some articles destroyed with no pomp whatsoever, and then did what he could to make the remaining objects useful, as in the tricolor scarves made of wool, which he had sep-
arated into three parts (blue, white, and red) or dyed and then turned over to charities.*® In the Haut-Rhin, the prefect likewise avoided a public display of seditious objects and any ceremony organized around their
destruction, although his reasoning had to do with the political complexion of his department and the effect such a ceremony was apt to produce. He explained to the minister of police, in a letter from February of
1816: “In many departments in the North, in the Midi, in the West, noted for their devotion to the royal cause, the signs of the usurpation have been publicly destroyed by burning. This measure had the double benefit of frightening the small number of troublemakers and satisfying the right-thinking majority by the public triumph of a cause for which they had made sacrifices, or for which they had shown themselves ready to make.” Unfortunately, he went on to explain, in Alsace the very different political persuasion of the majority of the citizens must deter the public administrators from engaging in these kinds of ceremonies. For
in his department there was but a very small group who did not take an active part in supporting the Hundred Days, and even they ended up following its laws. Everyone had taken an oath to the usurper’s government, almost everyone had signed the “acte additionnel.” In light of this, “if we were to make of the destruction of the tricolor flags, etc., a public ceremony, either it would have no spectators, and our goal would not be achieved, or there would be no others than the same Royalists who rallied around Napoleon just six months ago.” He saw therefore no advantage to be achieved from such a public ceremony, but rather the possibility of opening the royal cause to overt criticism, and so opted to burn the proscribed objects in the courtyard of the prefecture.*? What objects were actually destroyed in these ceremonies? Most of the objects were public property. Emblems, busts, seals, and flags were removed from schools, academies, city halls, court buildings, and bureaux de police; prints, paintings, and statues were removed from museums. In one of the most extensive lists put together by officials in this period, only one of 120 objects was privately owned; that was “an eagle painted on wood, coming from a tobacco shop.” °° Most of these objects derived from the reign of Napoleon. However, for those French citizens who came to watch such ceremonies, it was clear that the history and
The “Counterrevolutionary” State 53 symbols which they were supposed to forget stretched back before Napoleon to the beginning of the Revolution. The particular objects which were paraded before the spectators often bore witness to the historical changes of the previous twenty-five years. One drapeau tricolore, for example, from a commune in the arrondissement of Rouen, had been embroidered in different corners with insignia and words which told the story of the successive governments in France since 1789. A fleur-de-lis and the date “1791” attested to the period of the constitutional monarchy; the words la Nation, la Loi, la République and little liberty caps attested to the republican period of the Revolution and the Terror. The words Garde Nationale de Bonville, District de Cadebre attested to its continued use by the National Guard of this one town throughout the period from as early as 1791 to 1815.°! Because Napoleon had adopted the tricolor flag of the Revolution, any flag stood as a reminder of the Revolution itself; but this was usually underscored in the inventories of seditious objects which described tricolor flags and ties, for example, as “having served the National Guard under different revolutionary governments and under that of Bonaparte.” °” Flags which came specifically from the period of the Terror were often given special attention. As we saw above, such a flag often got a burning of its own.°? As the people stood and watched objects thrown onto the pyre, they saw liberty caps mixed with eagles, seals from the various revolutionary governments mixed with the imperial laurel, liberty trees mixed with busts and sculptures of the emperor. The inventory from the Loiret, followed by an explicit description of how these objects were destroyed, demonstrates this point perfectly. A large majority of the objects destroyed (either by fire, when possible, or by specialists hired to break and melt them down) were Napoleonic; but flags and seals and other objects often represented different governments from the previous twenty-five years: included fourth on the list were “576 seals of many types, either representing the republic, or the eagle, coming from diverse administrations,” and thirteenth on the list were “two liberty caps.” *4 If the onlookers thought about the Revolution as separate from the Empire, these ceremonies were designed to demonstrate that they were undeniably linked. This symbolic message was seconded in speeches, which argued that the Revolution and the Empire should be seen together as one horrible nightmare from which the French nation had only just begun to rouse itself. Talking about the tricolor, the subprefect of Yvetot asked the citi-
zens of his town to consider what about the various governments it
54 Politics as Theater represented was worth remembering: “Would it be the Rebellion against
the ill-fated Louis XVI... ? Would it be the carnage, the havoc which was wrought all over the land under this banner? Would it be its terrifying return which plunged us into an abyss of disaster?” °° When the same subprefect advised all the mayors in his district, “Let us abolish, without any hope of returning, all that can make us remember this epoch...” he was referring not only to the most recent Napoleonic adventure but to the twenty-five years of revolutionary turmoil en bloc.°* The same message was underscored in the report by the mayor of Orthez describing the ceremony in his town orchestrated around the destruction of “all the signs of the usurpation as well as all the emblems which bring to mind the calamitous times of despotism and anarchy.” Directly linking the “usurpation” or the memory of the Hundred Days with that of the Revolution, and especially the Terror, this mayor underscored the relationship between the particularly warm reception granted this ceremony in his town and the recent arrest of some troublemakers in a neighboring department who, in his words, “during these calm and happy days dream of nothing but overthrows and disorders, and hope only to reawaken those extinguished passions, and to reorganize the murder and the pillage .... to put France back under the yoke of the usurpation, in order to put us back under the blade of the executioners of 93.”°” The ceremonies often combined attacks on revolutionary and imperial symbols with the erection of symbols representing the new (old) regime. Drapeaux blancs, fleurs-de-lis, busts and portraits of the new king, and Christian symbols—statues of Christ or merely crosses—were resurrected on the facades of public buildings and in town squares. Cer-
emonies were not always orchestrated to celebrate these changes. A French citizen might have noticed that public officials in his town had changed the color of their scarves and belts from red to white, but no one seemed to celebrate such minor changes.*® But the erection of flags and busts did often merit a local celebration. In one small town a subprefect conducted a ceremony in which a tricolor flag from the time of the Terror was burned on a day set aside for celebrating the erection of a bust of Louis XVIII.°? While the direct substitution of a white flag for a tricolor flag, of a bust of Louis XVIII for a bust of Napoleon, or of a fleur-de-lis for an eagle was often carried out immediately, occasionally the local officials had to wait a while for the new symbols to arrive. In
Neufchatel the subprefect reported that the “signs of the past government” had disappeared by the 21st of December 1815, but on the date
The “Counterrevolutionary” State 55 when he wrote his report to his prefect, on the 25th of the same month, he was still waiting for a bust and portrait of the new king to arrive from Paris. He also informed his prefect of his intention to adorn the town square with a statue of Christ.©° Likewise, in a small town in the Dordogne, a liberty tree was chopped down and permission was immediately given to the local curé to erect in its place a huge stone cross. But the substitution was not immediate; the clear replacement of one set of symbols for another was not acted out for the local population of this town.*! Sometimes the substitutions were more subtle. In another town in the Dordogne a mayor turned over the wood from the town’s liberty tree to the curé to be used to repair the presbytery. The liberty tree was not transformed into a cross, but the message that the new regime was lending its material support to the Catholic church—a clear reversal of the revolutionary position—must not have been too difficult for most people to ascertain.®*
Some public officials stressed the religious aspect of the mise-enplace more than others. In some ceremonies the change of regime was portrayed as providential, an ultimate delivery from the evils of the Revolution. The erection of religious symbols was as important as the erection of monarchical symbols. In some cases the symbols were seen as inseparable. In the small town of St-Gilles de Crelot in the Seine-Inférieure, for example, the mayor organized a ceremony in the local church around the raising of a white flag. The flag was intended “as a sign of gratitude that Providence had wanted to return to us, Louis le Desiré, by
the name of Louis XVIII, ....” He arranged for the local National Guard to bring the flag into the church, where it was “then placed triumphantly in the sanctuary to be a souvenir and a sign of the most devoted love and attachment on the part of the inhabitants of this commune to legitimate authority and to the Bourbon family.” The local priest took advantage of the large gathering of officers of the National Guard and the other inhabitants of the town “to remind them of their most sacred duties to God and to his Religion, and to a cherished monarchy which God in all his grace has restored to us after twenty-five years
of turmoil and Tyranny, ... .” © Some local officials turned visits by members of the royal family into occasions for spreading this particularly religious message. In Toulouse, for example, the separate visits of the duke and the duchess of Angouléme, in July 1815 and September 1815, respectively, were turned into occasions for public processions and prayers. The symbols of the new government were paraded through the streets. The starting point and
56 Politics as Theater the ending point of the processions were churches, where public prayers were offered in expiation for the sins of the Revolution and in thanks for the Second Restoration.** Such ceremonies became the mainstay of the Missions to the Interior, long after the summer of 1816, when government officials ceased to conduct such ceremonies themselves. In the miseen-place ceremonies orchestrated by state officials, this expiatory message was rare. These officials did not evoke memories of a lugubrious past in order to inspire a massive reconversion to Christianity and legitimate monarchy; if they encouraged remembering at all (and even this was rare), it was to encourage the population to appreciate and embrace the peaceful, happy alternative which monarchy offered to the reign of disorder and anarchy. The king’s speech upon his return after the Hundred Days certainly expresses this logic. Alluding to the horrible twenty-five years when the Bourbons did not rule in France, the king explained: “My subjects have learned, through a cruel ordeal, that the principle of legitimate monarchy is one of the fundamental bases of the social order, the only one on which one can establish among a great people, a freedom at once prudent and orderly (sage and bien-ordonnée).” © Not explicitly denying that other “fundamental bases for the social order” could exist, but only stressing the obvious benefits of legitimate monarchy, the king’s speech
articulated a logic which many of his officials orchestrating mise-enplace ceremonies seemed to embrace. The subprefect of Yvetot’s circular to the mayors of his arrondissement clearly emphasized this value of evoking and destroying reminders of the past twenty-five years. In his words, “Let us destroy, without return, all that can remind us of this epoch when the most humiliating tyranny weighed upon our beautiful France. We remember this past only in order to be more sage and to rally with our hearts and our souls around the plus sage of Kings.” °° Surely everything about the ceremony in Yvetot underscored this logic. This is why the local official seized the occasion of a royal wedding to evoke images of the revolutionary past: casting the emblems of the past twentyfive years as contrived and unnatural, as bringing nothing but evil and violence to France, how could anyone present not want to embrace the
“natural” symbols of the Bourbons, which promised peace, sagacity, and virtue? Just as “th[e] bizarre amalgamation [of blue, white, and red] seemed to be the sad prognosis of all the confusion of our ideas and the profanation of all that has been, until now, the object of our respect,” so did the return of the drapeau blanc promise a peaceful, hopeful future. A similar logic must have inspired the mayor of Orthez to make twenty-
The “Counterrevolutionary” State 57 five years of emblems available for viewing for two hours before their destruction in his mise-en-place ceremony. But running through this subprefect’s speech is a related logic which I would argue is more prevalent in the staging of the mise-en-place across France. If remembering those “unhappy times” when citizens were “deprived of the presence of [their] cherished monarch” was necessary, the ultimate goal of this exercise was to forget: if the unnatural tricolor flag deserved a prominent place in the ceremony, it was to mark the moment when it and other symbols of its kind would be destroyed “without return.” ° Of course this was the stated intention of the government: destroying (and not merely removing from public view) the signes prohibés was essential to the security of the regime in the face of potential enemies, but this speech, and the whole project of the mise-en-place, reveals a deeper ideological purpose—namely, the effacement not only from the public landscape but from the very memory of the population of any alternatives to legitimate monarchy. In other words, by eliminating reminders of and therefore any retour (return, or comeback) of republicanism and Bonapartism, then using speeches to demonstrate the “natural” superiority of the representations of Bourbon rule, the representatives of the Restoration regime participated in a national campaign to undo the major accomplishment of the Revolution—the creation of ideological difference.°® The very existence of Napoleonic and revolutionary symbols threatened the Bourbon monarchy not only because they were capable of rallying the regime’s enemies but because they represented alternatives, which revealed Bourbon legitimacy to be one among many ways of organizing the social order; monarchy was but one of many “constructed” ideologies. The only way around this political truism was to deny the very events that made it true; this required nothing less than the physical and spiritual “purification” of France. Destroying actual reminders in the hope of purging the collective memory is what these ceremonies were meant to accomplish. The language of purification which dominates both the correspondence about this campaign and the speeches made in the context of these ceremonies makes sense in this regard. The minister of police himself claimed that the mere preservation of proscribed objects threatened to “corrupt the public spirit.”°? When a mayor from the small town of Gouy responded to his prefect’s orders, he echoed the language of many of his fellow civil officials when he assured his superior that “the commune was entirely purified (épurée).” 7° Some local officials went to extra-
ordinary lengths to cleanse the French landscape. In the Dordogne one
58 Politics as Theater mayor went so far as to burn the pole to which a tricolor flag was attached lest the pole pollute the white flag he was erecting in its place. He explained that he raised the new flag “with a new pole, not wanting the white flag to be souillié [defiled, sullied, polluted, blemished] by a pole which had served the tricolor flag.” 7! But the best evidence that most
officials used this ceremony as an act of purification was the fact that while they were directed by the minister of police merely to destroy the seditious objects they collected, almost all of them opted to destroy the corrupting reminders by fire.”” It was an official from the Basses-Pyrénées who combined the language of purification with that of forgetting in a speech which beautifully summarizes the regime’s approach to representing revolutionary events
and symbols in the context of these mise-en-place ceremonies. As he threw onto the fire what he called “these last emblems of our political errors,” he proclaimed: “May this fire in consuming them, efface, destroy to the very memory of our long misfortunes, . . . May these projects, as absurd as they were criminal, these crazy and guilty hopes, evaporate,
dissipate with this impure smoke, charged with the last traces of their abhorrent symbols.” The need for this destruction, and its relationship to the future of the regime, were both explained as the official described all that would remain once this “purification” was complete: “That the royal lily without stain (le Lys sans tache), that the Panache of the good Henry, be forevermore the oly signs of rallying, and that on festive days, as on days of combat, our voices can utter only the cry from the heart, this cry of love and of glory, VIVE LE ROI (Long Live the King).” 7
The Failure of Compulsory Amnesia Gauging the response of the French population to this elaborate campaign is no easy task. Reports of protests during individual ceremonies were rare. But they did happen. On the 21st of July 1815, the day a bust of Louis XVIII was to be set up in a lycée after a procession through the streets, young students screamed “Vive l’Empereur!” and booed, hissed, and whistled as others tried to say “Long Live the King.” 74 However,
since most of the evidence we have of the mise-en-place ceremonies comes from reports which were formulaic, and stressed the positive response of the assembled crowds, and since direct opposition of the above variety was rare (or rarely reported), assessing the actual response to the symbolic mise-en-place of the Restoration requires a certain degree of
The “Counterrevolutionary” State 59 imaginative effort. We need to think about what was not said or done at these ceremonies. What was not confiscated by the police? What objects were not burned? Who did not go to these ceremonies? Where were
they when they were taking place? What effect might the ceremonies have had?” Despite my efforts to tease out the logic guiding this national campaign, it is hard to know exactly what the government hoped for in organizing its mise-en-place. If in its call for the purification of France the government wanted the kind of spontaneous popular attacks on symbols which were common during the Wars of Religion, it was probably sadly disappointed. Except in the regions of the White Terror, the symbolic mise-en-place was at best stiff, formulaic, and ineffective. There is no evidence that these ceremonies made people believe in the sacrality of the resurrected monarchical and Christian symbols, or that they had become convinced of the “corruption” of their revolutionary counterparts.”° The government’s goal was, at the very least, to make people “forget”—to remove reminders of the previous twenty-five years from their
sight, to burn them, and thereby to prevent them from rallying citizens against the new government. But certainly the actions of local officials also drew attention to these objects. The officials themselves spent hours, even days, poring over such articles as the tricolor flag described above, which bore a full narrative of the Revolution and the Empire. As
they wrote their detailed reports, what were they thinking? What was their personal experience over the past twenty-five years? Did thinking about the different governments or the campaigns of Napoleon jog their memories, even make them think fondly of certain moments? No document in the archives confirmed such an eventuality, but one can find evidence of efforts by local officials to minimize compliance with the minister of police’s orders, as we saw in the many examples of such officials
either following orders with a minimum of pomp or having to be reminded repeatedly to remove and destroy the signes prohibés. What effect did the roundup of seditious objects have on the inhabitants of a given town? We saw above an example in which the local police asked advice on a case concerning an eagle in a local café. The officials ultimately asked the owner to remove the eagle from public display, which he did. Who was present when the gendarmes came in to talk to the café owner? Where was that eagle stored? Was it ever pulled out of storage to become the focus of good stories about the gendarmes and the Restoration government? or the good old days of the Empire?”” Who might
60 Politics as Theater have been present when police officers showed up in bookstores and began tearing out pages of catechisms? What did the inhabitants think and feel, and how did they respond when they viewed the pile of seditious objects before they were burned on the pyre in the town of Orthez?78 On the most basic, material level, we know the campaign was at least a partial failure. Even where the objets proscrits were successfully re-
placed with appropriate monarchical and Christian symbols, is it not conceivable that the new objects served as reminders of what they had replaced? There were so many objects and sites which represented layers of memory. When the people in St-Saud in the Dordogne went to their town square and saw the new stone cross put up by the curé, did they ever think of the liberty tree which had stood there before? 7? When the people of Rouen walked into the central room of their city hall they would have seen a statue initially created to represent Minerva that had been transformed during the Revolution into a goddess of liberty. After much discussion, it was finally decided in January of 1816 that the statue
was to be “returned to its original state” and left standing in the city hall.8° This statue was removed for a short time in order to be appropriately stripped of its revolutionary attributes. Would the visitors to the city hall have noticed the change? When people went to church, to school, or into a bookstore, and used or bought a prayer book, they may have seen catechisms whose pages containing passages referring to Napoleon were shredded, or the offending passages crossed out. But seeing the missing pages or the black marks was also a reminder of what the regime was currently defining itself against. The goal of the regime’s mise-en-place campaign was the total eradication of reminders of the Revolution and a purification of the political landscape. But the ability of even appropriate monarchical and Christian objects to jog people’s memories about past regimes undermined the basic project. From the reports it is clear that the government could not even claim to have wiped out all public examples of the signes prohibés. There are
many examples of officials claiming that their “commune is entirely purified... .” Most reports confidently assure the minister of police that the officials in question “can certify that no [seditious objects] exist in the whole area of their department.” *! But at the same time, their reports also indicate the continued existence of objects they had not been
able to locate. In one small town in the Seine-Inférieure, the mayor, thinking his campaign to clean up revolutionary symbols was at an end,
learned that members of the local National Guard had simply turned their tricolor cockades inside out, and since there was white fabric on
The “Counterrevolutionary” State 61 the inside they now “appeared” to be white cockades. In a postscript to his report he reassured his superior that he discovered that the tricolor cockades had been conserved not in a “spirit of opposition,” but in an effort to economize, which made it more excusable.** For whatever reason they were conserved, these tricolor emblems, hidden on the undersides of the appropriate white counterparts, stood as evidence that the past had certainly not been erased without the possibility of retour. Other examples cited throughout these pages—such as the scarves which one prefect chose to separate into their component blue, white, and red parts to be given to charity— offer the same kind of tangible evidence of the past. In another case, involving the seal of the city of Bosquerard, the mayor explained, “the eagle still exists on the seal of the mayor’s office; but when I am obliged to use it, I do so in such a way as to prevent the eagle from appearing, so that one sees only the words, ‘Mairie du Bosquerard.’” 83 A little pressure in the wrong direction while applying the seal, and the eagle would have appeared—either accidentally or inten-
tionally. How many such objects, having the outward appearance of monarchical emblems but concealing revolutionary emblems, remained in circulation? Where the project was truly a failure was in the realm of private possessions. Flags and busts adorning public facades may have been effectively removed from view (or appropriately transformed), but the same cannot be said of the innumerable everyday objects bearing the prohibited signs which had been proliferating in French households for twentyfive years. As already noted, inventories of objects collected rarely refer to privately owned objects. Although some local officials, like the prefect of the Jura, took special care to assure his superior about the absence of privately owned seditious objects, (“very few busts and portraits of Bonaparte are to be found in the homes of private individuals”), usually this was not discussed. Evidence of widespread symbolic sedition from later on in the Restoration demonstrates that such “privately held” objects were very much in circulation. This leaves us with certain nagging questions regarding these mise-en-place ceremonies. What did it mean for a person to watch his or her local public official burn tricolor flags and make long speeches about the need to purify the landscape, and then to go home and eat dinner from a plate bearing scenes from great imperial victories, sit on a chair (or chamber pot) with liberty caps, take tobacco from a tricolor case and smoke it in a Napoleonic pipe? This is not merely a rhetorical question, for court records and police reports from the period 1816 through 1830 bear witness to the continued,
62 Politics as Theater if not renewed, importance of such revolutionary reminders in the daily lives of French people. “The Old Flag,” a song by Pierre Jean de Béranger from December of 1821, evokes the image of the hidden (in this case, Napoleonic) emblem preserving memories of more glorious days, and private hopes of political change: My old Companions in our days Of glory greet me here; Drunk with remembrances, the wine Hath made my memory clear: Proud of my own exploits and theirs, My flag my straw-thatched cottage shares. Ah! when shall I shake off the dust In which its noble colours rust? Beneath the straw where, poor and maimed, I sleep, ’tis hid from view: . . .°4
But is this what holding on to objects with insignia from the Revolution and the Empire meant for most French citizens? Perhaps it was simply a way of thumbing one’s nose at authority. Or perhaps it was a way of remembering personal experiences with which they were associated. But perhaps it did represent an attachment to, or faith in, a political ideology in just the way that the revolutionaries had hoped it would some day. If so, to what ideology were they showing their allegiance? To Bonapartism? To republicanism? What did various symbols mean?
Of course the tricolor flag hidden away by the veteran of the Napoleonic campaigns was only the most glaring example of the kind of material reminder of the past which overtly threatened the regime; the whole range of material “reminders” evoked here—from the stone cross which had replaced the liberty tree, to the white cockades merely concealing their tricolor underside, to the extraordinary diversity of seditious objects among the private possessions of the population—all these tangible reminders revealed the failure of the politics of oubli, the utter impossibility of returning to a world where legitimate monarchy was a given, or the only alternative available. Indeed local officials furthered the revolutionaries’ project by attaching new layers of political meaning to the now prohibited signs dating from the “ceremonial interregnum” when the Bourbon monarchs did not rule France: their mise-en-place ceremonies identified the symbols and practices of the Revolution and the Empire as the perfect vehicles for remembering, and eventually for opposing the current regime.
The “Counterrevolutionary” State 63 The Reluctant Commemoration of Regicide The second public ceremony by which the regime practiced its politics of forgetting involved the commemoration of the executions of Louis XVI and Marie Antoinette. Just as representatives of the state did not use the mise-en-place ceremonies to evoke, but rather to efface, the memory of
the Revolution, so did they not use the 21st of January and the 16th of October to condemn the French people for their actions in 1793 but rather to distance them from the single act which most seriously challenged the Bourbons’ claim to legitimacy. Everything about the way in which the regime commemorated regicide underscores this fact, from the procedure followed in the annual days of mourning celebrated on the 21st of January and the 16th of October, to the nature of the monuments and coins produced in memory of these events. Even more than its miseen-place ceremonies, the regime’s reluctance to commemorate regicide clearly articulates the conception of monarchy put forth by the state in the postrevolutionary world. Avoiding as it did any allusions to the physical bodies of the king and queen, or the actual death of the “first body” of the king (and queen), the regime focused on the challenges posed by the temporary death of the “second body” of the king, the body politic in its monarchical incarnation, and simply avoided any evocations of the relationship between this and the mortal, “executed” body of the king. In the fall of 1815, after the second return of the Bourbons, a proposal was put forth in the Chamber of Deputies for an annual celebration of the 21st of January, the anniversary of King Louis XVI’s execution. The proposal itself denied the legitimacy of the assembly which voted to kill the king in 1793, denied the culpability of the French people in the “crime” of the execution, and asked for a ceremony that would give the people of France an opportunity to formally distance themselves from this crime. The proposal read: Given that this House is the first assembly legally elected under a legitimate government, which has freely exercised its powers since this unhappy epoch; given, that the only way to free the French from a crime of which they were never guilty, is to attest to their profound pain by a solemn act; given that the disavowal of this crime is a heartfelt act in which the entire French population would want to participate, I ask that his Majesty be asked to propose a law in which two things will be required: 1) A solemn service be conducted
in every church in France to consecrate the painful memory of the 21st of January; 2) the same day be declared one of general mourning, to attest to the eternal regrets of all of the French.*
64 Politics as Theater The proposal was well received and debate on the issue only concerned practical details, such as whether or not statues should also be erected in memory of King Louis XVI and other royal victims of the Revolution. That this ceremony and the monuments to be erected were designed to reassert a particular conception of monarchy is clear from the language of the debate around it. In particular, a proposed amendment to the above law, which referred specifically to the erection of a monument for Louis XVI, recommended that a declaration be engraved on the monument which denied the role the nation played in the “parricide” committed on the 21st of January 1793. Furthermore, it contained an oath of fidelity to the legitimate monarchs of France, and to the funda-
mental and sacred right of primogeniture, from male to male, established by God in the family of Saint Louis, Henry IV, and Louis XVI. All of the members of the chambers were to sign this declaration and oath. The original text read: In the presence of God and our fellow men, we, the deputies of the French Nation declare, affirm that this nation, so long unhappy and captive, was not complicitous in the parricidal execution committed on the 21st of Janu-
ary 1793....It is by the blood of this most august victim that, in front of God and our fellow men, on behalf of ourselves, our children, our nephews, and the France which we represent, we swear unshakable fidelity to our legitimate kings, regarding as a sacred and fundamental principle, the unalterable, imprescriptable right of heredity by primogeniture from male to male, of Henry IV, and of Louis XVI.°¢
Thus in the very framing of this ordinance we see the direct connection between reasserting loyalty and unshakable fidelity to legitimate monarchy and the erasure of the act of regicide, the exoneration of the popu-
lation from the single act which overtly challenges “the unalterable, imprescriptable right of heredity by primogeniture . .. .” which this commemorative act was meant to solidify. On the rg9th of January 1816, Louis XVIII signed and promulgated an abbreviated version of this law, making the 21st of January a day of mourning for the whole kingdom
and requiring the celebration of a solemn service in every church in France in memory of the king. The law also stated that in “expiation for this unhappy day” a monument would be erected to Louis XVI.°” The failure to actually erect such a monument, and the repeated efforts of the regime to exonerate the population from complicity in this crime, to evade graphic representations of violence, and to stress forgiveness rather than the need for expiation, demonstrate that if the regime em-
The “Counterrevolutionary” State 65 ployed the language of “expiation” in this law, this was certainly not the spirit which guided its approach to handling regicide. The nature of the annual commemoration of the 21st of January prescribed by the king and carried out all over the country clearly illustrates this point. For the 21st of January, the government required only a mod-
est ceremony in memory of the executed king, as a part of a mass in churches all over France. All civil servants were expected to attend this ceremony and to dress appropriately in black. Since the day was to be treated as a national day of mourning, all administrative offices were to be closed, as were stores, cafés, and cabarets. What is interesting is that the ceremony was explicitly mot to include a sermon, but only a reading of the last will and testament of the late king. In the words of the circular sent to the archbishops of France in December of 1815, “It is the desire of the King, that on the 21st of January there be no funeral oration in the church, but only a reading of Louis XVI’s Last Will and Testament; this is the most noble manner in which to remind the French of
the great virtues of this Prince, and to renew the profound affection which these painful memories excite.” 8 There were to be no speeches evoking the lurid details of the event, no condemnations from the pulpit
of the French population’s part in the act of execution; instead, the people would hear only Louis XVI’s noble plea that his nation forgive and forget. The most important sections of the will to be read on this occasion underscored the king’s own willingness to forgive. Referring to those who had imprisoned and were planning to execute him, the king wrote, “I pardon, with all my heart, all those who have made themselves my enemies without my having given them cause, and I pray that God will also pardon them, and I also pardon those who by a false zeal, or a misguided zeal, have greatly wronged me.” Later in his will the message of forgetting and forgiving was addressed in particular to his son, the future king: “I recommend to my son, should he have the unhappiness to become King, to think of all that is required for the happiness of his fellow Citizens, that he must forget all hatred and all resentment and especially all that has any relation to the misery and grief that I am suffering.” 8? What this translated into, in practice, was a ceremony which contained only the most abstract references to the act of regicide itself. The same general principles shaped the commemoration of Marie Antoinette’s execution: the 16th of October, like the 21st of January, was treated as a day of mourning, when people were expected to wear black, and when civil servants were expected to be present at a mass in
66 Politics as Theater the local church. Again, no sermon was to be read; but in this case the reading matter chosen was particularly interesting. For it bespoke an effort to use this occasion to clean up the image of the late queen. Portrayed as a libertine before the Revolution in the pornographic libelles which spread rumors of her sexual promiscuity, during her trial even the queen’s sexual relationship with her own son was raised by the prosecution.?° This was clearly a useful ploy, since the revolutionaries were trying to portray her as a doubly bad mother—of her nation as well as of her own child. Marie Antoinette’s sister-in-law, Madame Elisabeth, was also implicated in this alleged incest. During the Restoration the reading the government chose for the ceremony commemorating Marie Antoinette’s execution was the letter she wrote to this sister-in-law on the eve of her death, which explicitly denied the accusation of incest. The relevant passage of this letter apologized for the testimony of her son at
her trial. “I have to talk to you about something which gives me great pain. I know how much this child must have made you suffer! pardon him, my dear Sister; think of how young he is, how easy it is to make a child say almost anything, especially about something he doesn’t understand.” Once the sexual crime was thus denied, the remainder of the letter emphasized the religiosity of the queen, for in the last passages of her letter she expressed her commitment to the Roman Catholic church and her desire to settle her sins with God before she died.*! After 1824, when the death of Louis XVIII introduced the need for another day of mourning in October, the queen’s memorial was shifted to the 21st of January,
and the reading of her letter was suppressed. Thereafter, only the late king’s demand for forgiveness and forgetting was intoned annually on the day set aside for commemorating the regicides of 1793. On the local level some officials went beyond the minimum orders issued by the minister of the interior and celebrated the day of mourning
for Louis XVI with considerably more pomp. In Marseilles, in 1818, bells were rung in all the churches, and a cannon fired on the eve of the anniversary as the sun set over the town. First thing in the morning on the 21st, the same sound was heard as all the vessels in the port lowered their flags to half-mast.?? In the department of the Manche, a circular sent out by the prefect required the organization of a procession to the church in any town where the National Guard was organized.”? In Troyes, inhabitants of the town were invited to hang white flags outside their homes, marked with black ribbons as a sign of mourning. A special invitation was also extended to all the inhabitants in the town to come to the church dressed in black—not just the usual civil servants.”
The “Counterrevolutionary” State 67 Everyone seemed to adhere to the minister of police’s requirement that stores and especially cafés and cabarets be closed, but some required that they remain closed only for the duration of the church ceremony, while others extended the period of official mourning for up to a whole weekend.”°
But in an extraordinary initiative from the local level, we find the resuscitation of the revolutionary practice of communal oath-taking, only this time used for counterrevolutionary ends. During the Revolution the oath of loyalty was a critical ritual because it underlined the contrast between national sovereignty, borne of the general will, and the authority of kings.” During the Restoration we find local officials using the same
practice of the oath, but this time to reassert the king’s sovereignty. In many cities registers were circulated, offering citizens of France the opportunity to take a solemn oath attesting that they had never participated in the initial killing of the king, and that they supported the legitimacy of the new monarch. The municipal council of Dieppe, for example, requested authorization from its prefect to open such a register in 1816, which members described as “a public register in which each of the inhabitants of this city could attest, by the addition of their signature, that he is completely innocent of the spilling of the blood of the unfortunate Louis XVI, and that he wishes to abandon to public execration that band of troublemakers and plotters upon whom alone the blame for such a crime should fall.” ?” In the Dro6me the prefect recommended that the subprefects and mayors of his department encourage the citizens of their towns and villages to take the oath, which was supposed to serve as the inscription for the monument to Louis XVI. The citizens of the department were supposed to go to their churches, approach the altar, offer remorse and tears, and take the following oath to God: “we swear unswerving fidelity to our legitimate kings, regarding the principle of hereditary primogeniture from male to male as a fundamental, sacred, and inalienable right, established by God in the fam-
ily of Saint Louis.” The prefect added another important vow of his own: “We promise him that we shall never again allow a usurper to rise amongst us.” ?§ The most successful register campaign seems to have taken place in the Manche, where the prefect claimed to have collected the signatures of over 60,000 people, expressing “horror, inspired by the murder committed against the sacred person of His Majesty the King, Louis XVI.” ”? The language of this last prefect’s report seems to stray the farthest from the national government’s manner of commemorating regicide. Drawing attention to the “sacred person” of the king, this one
68 Politics as Theater local exception underscores how much the national government and most of its local officials used the commemoration of regicide to avoid evoking the bodies of the king and queen, and, when acknowledging the act of regicide, to associate it with a band of troublemakers acting outside of and against the general will. Most of the reports on the local celebrations of the 21st of January were formulaic, and simply stressed the solemnity of the church service. A few officials were more enthusiastic. The prefect of the Hautes-Alpes, in a particularly positive report, explained that it was not surprising that the inhabitants of his department were extremely happy to have this pious ceremony, considering that during the Revolution “the deputies of this department showed themselves to be wholly loyal, and not one of them figured among those who saved their own skin by sacrificing that of the royal victim.” °° Some “positive” reports were clearly designed to reassure the national officials who were concerned about political opposition in certain towns. One letter from the prefect of Aisne proudly reported that the 21st of January was celebrated all over his department
with “solemnity and the most sincere expressions of regret.” In one town in particular, he added, “a spacious church was filled by the entire population of the town, ....Isaw old people leave their retirement, and throw themselves at the foot of the altar, demanding God’s pardon for a crime which they hadn’t committed.” But the rest of the letter throws some doubt on the veracity of this report. The prefect seemed to be responding to questions about “disturbances” which had plagued these ceremonies in his town before when he noted, “Seditious cries are becoming rarer; bringing some troublemakers before the local prosecutors, and seeing that rapid and severe justice was done, I clearly spread the message that such crimes would never rest unpunished, and the frequency of such acts immediately diminished.” 1°! One has to wonder if he did not exaggerate the enthusiasm of the retirees in his department to compensate for the seditious acts about which the minister of police was so concerned. Occasionally reports directly indicated the unpopularity of this solemn occasion. The prefect from the Céte d’Or admitted just how badly a ceremony in his department went in 1816. “Last year the funeral celebration of the 21st of January had a chilly reception. Many churches were deserted, and the people appeared to be unmoved by the memories which this sad occasion evokes.” But the prefect was pleased to report
that the popular response was much improved the following year. “I have the great satisfaction of announcing to your Excellence, that the
The “Counterrevolutionary” State 69 funeral was celebrated in a totally different manner this year.” The churches in 1817 were apparently filled and “tears were shed in abundance” as the testament of the late king was read. It seems that some
farmers got so upset during this part of the ceremony that they lost consciousness. !°
In a number of cases, civil servants refused to participate, even though they were required by law to take part in the ceremony. In one town of the Bas-Rhin the justice of the peace, several key members of the
city council, and other city officials did not show up at the ceremony. The prefect interpreted this as “a plot on the part of these civil servants to show their scorn for the august Bourbon family.” 1°3 Similarly in the Lot-et-Garonne, one primary school teacher refused to attend the ceremony as he was supposed to, accompanied by his students. The teacher was suspended from his position for his insolence.1% For the ceremony of mourning orchestrated for the late queen the regime seemed to have more problems getting people to participate. The commissariat in Corsica complained: “In spite of the number of individual invitations which were proffered in the city, in spite of the ringing of the churchbells which, beginning the night before, solemnly announced this sacred service, the inhabitants did not come, and there were only a small number of women, mostly the wives of civil servants.” 1° But it was not only in areas where people were known to support the ex-emperor that this ceremony was unpopular. In Le Havre the subprefect explained that the ceremony was attended by all of the officials in town, but that the local population was completely uninterested in the celebration. “[A]ll the civil servants came... but as to the part which the inhabitants of the city as a whole played in this ceremony, very few appeared at the church, and this day of mourning produced nothing but a sentiment of complete indifference among the masses.” 1° There were some cases in which the civil authorities, required by law to attend, refused to participate.!°” In the Haut-Rhin the president of the
local tribunal publicly refused to take part in the commemoration. When the prefect saw that he was absent from the ceremony, he sent a detachment of soldiers out to escort him to the church. When the soldiers reached his home they were informed by the president that he had no intention of going to the ceremony. They had no choice but to go back to the church without him.!°8 More often, if the civil authorities
chose not to attend, they did so less overtly. In Chateauroux, in the Indre, the officers of the National Guard, who were supposed to attend the ceremony, sent their subofficers to replace them. The prefect was
70 Politics as Theater “scandalized” by this and required the officers to take part in the ceremony after all.1°° In Rouen in 1822 the authorities expected critics of the regime to use the occasion of the 16th of October to make “seditious cries against the king.” Special surveillance was established at the church, but no incident followed.!!° The ceremonies in memory of the king and queen organized by state officials did not always excite enthusiastic participation, but de-
spite the occasional fears of the authorities, they also did not become privileged occasions for the critics of the regime to perpetrate seditious crimes. These, as we shall see in later chapters, were reserved for the spectacles of the missionaries, who used the commemorations of the 21st of January and the 16th of October to attack the revolutionary legacy more harshly, to evoke the guilt of the French population, and to cement a new bond between the people and their Most Christian Kings. To these commemorations there were quite passionate responses, both for and against. It is only after we compare the commemoration of regicide prescribed by the state with the fervent, participatory spectacles of the missionaries in the next chapter that the modesty of the regime’s approach, its reluc-
tance to represent the executions of the king and queen, will become clear. From the archives of the police, from the reports of local functionaries on the official days of mourning on the 21st of January and the 16th of October, it is the silence which is deafening—silence about the events of the Revolution, nationally or locally; silence about the violence of the Terror; silence about the actual deaths of the king and queen. If this silence can only be fully appreciated after we look carefully at the expiatory denunciations of revolutionary violence conducted by the missionaries, the reality of the regime’s reluctance to represent regicide can be demonstrated by closely examining its other commemorative efforts in the realm of monuments and coins. The law of January 1816, which required the celebration of the 21st
of January and the 16th of October, included the stipulation that a monument be erected on the site where Louis XVI and Marie Antoinette were executed in “expiation” for these events; the consistent reluctance on the part of the regime to actively represent regicide is demonstrated
by its repeated failure to carry out this project. After the first stone of the monument had been put into place on the Place Louis XV in January of 1815, with a plaque which read “A Louis XVI, le 21 janvier,” plans for the erection of a full-scale commemorative statue were dropped.
When Charles X came to the throne, he conceived the notion of finally
The “Counterrevolutionary” State 71 erecting this monument in the context of the Jubilee celebration in 1826; the monument representing regicide was to be the last of four stations where special expiatory prayers for the sins of the nation would be conducted. While the willingness of the new king to use the commemoration of regicide in this way bespeaks a logic closer to the missionaries
and heretofore foreign to the state, in actuality the project was never achieved. The regime did not begin construction on the monument until 1827, and then the project was abandoned, supposedly because of squabbling over costs.!!! But the fact is that in spite of Charles X’s inclinations, the regime never did support the use of commemorating regicide for anything but its politics of forgetting. Its failed effort to erect an expiatory chapel at the Madeleine illustrates the same point.
In 1816, Louis XVIII issued instructions that the Madeleine, the church refashioned under Napoleon as a “Temple of Glory,” be turned into an expiatory church to the memory of Louis XVI, Marie Antoi-
nette, and Madame Elisabeth. “Their statues in white marble had a place reserved for them,” and for the altar was conceived “a statue of Saint Mary Magdalen, represented as a personification of France in an attitude of repentance.” !!? Barthelemy Vignon, the architect hired by Napoleon to build the Temple of Glory, was given the task of transforming the Madeleine into an expiatory monument. As was true for the monument to regicide on the Place Louis XV, the Church of the Madeleine was never transformed into a monument of expiation. When Vignon died in 1828, he was buried in a vault under the church porch, but his ideas were never put into effect because of squabbles over fnances and disagreements with the director of fine arts. It was not until after 1830 that a successor to Vignon was named, and clearly by then the impetus to commemorate regicide was past; in fact, for a short time the July Monarchy considered consecrating the building to the victims of the Three Glorious Days.'!9 If these failed expiatory monuments tell us something about the regime’s reluctance to represent regicide, the one successful commemorative site—the Conciergerie— demonstrates beautifully the logic the regime endorsed throughout its fifteen years in power when it came to representing the events of 1793. The Conciergerie, the prison where Marie Antoinette was kept be-
tween August and October of 1793 while she awaited her trial and execution, was the one site which the Restoration regime successfully transformed into a “lieu de mémoire” for the Revolution.!14 Everything about the transformation of this site expressed the logic of oubli which guided this regime’s commemoration of the Revolution. While called an
72 Politics as Theater “expiatory chapel,” this monument, as it was actually constructed under direct orders from King Louis XVIII, did, in fact, remain true to the regime’s politics of forgetting. The site was not used to evoke the horrific events of August through October of 1793; indeed every change worked to efface the traces of these tragic moments and to replace them with edi-
fying emblems of the need to forget and forgive the events which transpired there. It was only in the context of the bicentennial of the Revolution that the Conciergerie was restored to its historic state; from 1816 until 1989 this monument and museum expressed the message which the Restoration regime consistently uttered regarding the events of the previous twenty-five years. The current guidebook to the Conciergerie describes the changes effected during the Restoration in a way that underlines this fact. In the form in which it was created this expiatory monument radically transformed the prison cell of the queen, even in its very essence. From a miserable, bare place, it became a fully-furnished, almost luxurious private chapel; from a closed and anguished space, it became an annex or prolongation of the prison’s chapel, a site for prayer. Many people have accused Peyre [the architect responsible for these changes] of having acted without nuance, with a serious lack of archeological scruples. This is to forget the fact that his changes were supported and directed by the desire of Louis XVIII to suppress or do away with the dungeon; this wretched site was supposed to have disappeared in order to re-emerge in a completely different form, at once more banal (but more bearable) and idealized. Worries about historical integrity played no role at all in the construction of this monument; the only thing that mattered was the clear and coherent political and religious goal it was meant to achieve.!*
What, precisely, were the changes made? Before the transformation, Marie Antoinette’s cell was part of a larger room, also shared by her
guards, and separated by a wall from the adjacent chapel. When the room was remade in 1816, a wall was erected between the queen’s space and that of the guards, and the wall dividing her from the chapel was removed. The actual bed in which Marie Antoinette slept in her cell was removed, and in its place was erected an altar, equipped with a crucifix given by Louis XVIII, which was supposed to have been used by the late
queen during her time in this prison. Thus all physical traces of the queen’s incarceration were removed from what had been her cell: the guards were gone, the bed was gone; and the space she occupied was sanctified by the altar, by the crucifix, and by the new connection with the adjoining chapel.!"¢
The “Counterrevolutionary” State 73 The cenotaph made of marble, erected in the original chapel of the prison, completes the message of cleansing, pardoning, and forgetting which the transformation of the cell accomplished. It bears two inscriptions: the upper half, written in Latin by Louis XVIII, says: On this site, Marie Antoinette, Jeanne of Austria, the widow of Louis XVI, after the death of her husband and the removal of her children, was thrown into prison, where she remained for seventy-six days in anxiety, mourning, and abandon. But strengthened by her courage, she showed herself to be, in chains as she was on the throne, greater than her fortune. Condemned to death by criminals, awaiting her death, she wrote an eternal monument to piety, courage, and all the virtues on 16 October 1793. All who come here, adore, admire, and pray.!!”
The second excerpt is in French, and reiterates the plea from Louis XVI’s last will and testament, to which the queen’s final letter alludes: That my son never forget the last words of his father which he repeated explicitly for him, that he never try to avenge our death. I pardon all of my enemies for the ills they have done to me.!!8
The decorations commissioned for the chapel offered an expiatory narrative to make sense of the events which transpired there. Of the three paintings chosen to adorn the three walls of the chapel, the first featured the queen in her cell, looking peacefully out the window; the second showed her being separated from her family at the Temple (where they were all imprisoned until August of 1793); and the third showed her
taking communion in her cell. None of the paintings actually refer to her execution, and the final canvas represents an historically impossible scene, for the queen is represented as receiving the sacraments from a refractory priest, the Abbé Maguin, in full regalia. This third painting, interestingly, replaced an original commissioned for the site, a canvas which represented the queen at the moment when she wrote to the august princess the letter which was read at her funeral commemorations between 1815 and 1824.'!? According to one art historian, the three scenes do much more than evoke three historical moments in the life of this royal prisoner; taken together “they retrace the sufferings and the torments of the queen who, in the name of faith, accepts to sacrifice her own innocent blood and to pardon her executioners. . . . in this way her sacrifice is paralleled to that of Christ. By her martyrdom, Marie Antoinette cleanses the crimes committed during the Terror, she becomes France’s redemptress.” !2° This message was common fare in the
74 Politics as Theater expiatory spectacles of the Missions to the Interior. But for the regime it
was quite exceptional, and within this very monument the expiatory message was less important than the transformations to the site itself which emphasized erasure of the past, forgiveness for the acts commemorated there, and the general effort to rehabilitate the queen’s image in a positive light.'*! As a rule, the regime either avoided erecting monuments in expiation for the executions of the king and queen, or when they succeeded they
used them as an opportunity to encourage forgetting and forgiveness. The same reluctance to commemorate regicide can be seen in the way in which the regime chose to represent this act in medals. The regime is-
sued medals in commemoration of most of the important occasions marking this period.'** The regime issued seven medals on the subject of the executions of the king and queen. None of them featured any direct
reference to the act of regicide which was mourned annually. On one medal engraved by the Baron de Puymaurin, who was directeur de la Monnaie from 1816 to 1830, the deaths of the king, his sister, and the queen were commemorated, but without reference to their execution. The front of this coin featured the joined busts of Louis XVI in uniform, with Marie Antoinette and Madame Elisabeth in court dress, and contained an inscription around the edge which read, “Louis XVI, MarieAntoinette D’Aut., P.M.H. Elisabeth de Fr.” The reverse side contained
an inscription between two palms which read, “Son / of Saint Louis / rose to heaven / 21 January 1793 / 16 October 1793 / 10 May 1794.” All the other medals drew attention to the regime’s commemorative efforts rather than to the executions they actually commemorated. One medal featured the exhumation of the remains of the Bourbon monarchs, while another showed the transfer of their ashes to Saint-Denis. Another medal commemorated the setting of the first stone of the monument in the Place Louis XV (which was never completed). The last medal struck celebrated the construction of the expiatory chapel at the Eglise de la Madeleine (even though, as we have seen, the chapel itself was never achieved).!2°
Just as we will compare the expiatory celebrations of the missionaries with the restrained days of mourning organized by the regime, we need only compare these medals with those by which émigrés commemorated the killing of members of the royal family in order to recognize the degree to which the Restoration regime avoided graphic references to the acts of the Revolution which directly assaulted the institution of monarchy.!24 Most of the émigrés’ medals featured guillotines and the
The “Counterrevolutionary” State 75 royal victims, either being transported to the executioner’s block or after they had been killed, and included such inscriptions as “Cry and seek revenge!” 125 One represented France as a beast with the head of a sow and the tail of a serpent lancing its venom, with one paw resting on the severed head of Louis XVI.1*° A medal commemorating the killing of the queen featured a madwoman with an ax in one hand and a torch in the other marching and trampling a field of royal lilies. The inscription read, “Second victim of a regicidal people.” 12” In a set of medals commemorating the execution of other family members—Madame Elisabeth and Philippe Egalité—the people of France were represented, in one, as a pack of wolves attacking a dove and, in the other, as a serpent
encircling a crown, a scepter, and a sword.'*8 The contrast between these violent and judgmental medals and those issued by the Restoration regime is striking. But in its approach to regicide, as in its approach to the whole range of events and reminders which were the legacy of the past twenty-five years, the regime showed itself to be remarkably consistent and steadfast; if it was to confront the “ceremonial interregnum” when the Bourbons did not reign in France, it was only to encourage its subjects to forget it. If its mise-en-place ceremonies and its reluctance to commemorate regicide dramatized the regime’s politics of oubli, its commitment to this policy will become clearer still when we examine the efforts of local gov-
ernment officials to contend with their supporters in the church who, throughout the Restoration, adopted a radically different approach to casting the revolutionary past in relationship to monarchy and its future.
CHAPTER TWO
The Missionaries Expiation and the Resacralization of the King’s Two Bodies
In 1820, between the 2nd of January, when a procession featuring 3,000 pénitents marked the opening of a mission in Marseilles, and the 27th of February, when an even more extravagant procession and ceremony marked its close, the inhabitants of Marseilles were invited to participate in a religious revival.! Led by eighteen clergymen from the national Missionaries of France, with Charles de Forbin-Janson at their head and five missionaries from a regional society, the revival was made possible by the assistance of local clergymen, urged on by the vociferous support of the archbishop of Aix. Instead of the usual commercial activities and festivities associated with the carnival season, the city of Marseilles was transformed for eight solid weeks by the spiritual efforts of these zealous missionaries, intent upon returning its inhabitants to a strict adherence to the sacraments, too long abandoned by this increasingly incredulous or at least nonpracticing population.’ The extensive efforts of the clergy assembled in Marseilles to bring the parishioners back into their churches, to confess their sins, and to reconsecrate their lives to Christ by the taking of the sacraments are at-
tested to by the exhaustive and exhausting labor of the priests, who worked daily from 4 o’clock in the morning until 8 o’clock at night, scheduling church services, confessions, and retreats at all hours in an effort to make themselves available to a majority of the population. Their message was an austere one: they denounced simple pleasures such as dancing and the theater; they inveighed against the immoral and irreli76
The King’s Two Bodies 77 gious writings of Voltaire and Jean-Jacques Rousseau, and against the many “dangerous” novels they accused of “poisoning” the local population. They willingly employed terrifying tactics, such as preaching from a cemetery over an open grave, surrounded by bones and with a skull in their hands, to threaten those outside the kingdom of Christ with eternal damnation. While “private” sins were addressed in the priests’ sermons and services, “communal” sins, particularly those committed during the course of the Revolution, often provided the focus for their efforts. By their own account, the most successful of their services was held on the 21st of January, when “evoking at the same time the Passion of the Son of God and the suffering of the martyr-king Louis XVI,” the Pére Guyon succeeded in provoking the wave of confessions that would bind the people of Mar-
seilles both to their God, through the sacrifice of his son, Jesus Christ, and to their new king, Louis XVIII, the successor to the martyr, Louis XVI.3 This critical religious and political message was repeated regularly throughout the mission—at the end of separate retreats for men, women, and soldiers, and in larger outdoor ceremonies, when the priests led their followers in the amendes honorables, or the public confessions for sins
against God and their king, practices common under the reigns of the Most Christian Kings of the Old Regime, but newly resurrected in the religious and political expiatory ceremonies of these missionaries. The specific connection between the need to expiate for the Revolu-
tion and the reassertion of the legitimate authority of the resacralized kings was made clear in sermons as well as in rituals and symbols at the center of the mission. In sermons, priests preached against every aspect of the Revolution: the killing of the king and queen, of course, but also
practices which implicated their auditors more directly, such as the traffic in biens nationaux, the oaths taken by constitutional priests to the revolutionary state, and the civil ceremony for marriage. Missionaries in Marseilles used their ceremonies to invoke the public landscape of the Revolution, particularly drawing attention to its most violent episodes. The final procession was carefully orchestrated around two sites where
the guillotine had stood during the revolutionary period: at the first a communal confession was organized; at the second, Forbin-Janson gave a rousing sermon which ended with the invocation, “No more victims. No more executioners.” This ceremony was concluded with the erection of a massive cross, requiring 3,000 men to carry it; the site of the cross was carefully chosen, again to evoke the local geography of the Revolution, and particularly the violence turned against the Catholic church.*
78 Politics as Theater After weeks of debating potential sites for the cross, the missionaries agreed upon the spot where a cross had been violently destroyed during the Revolution.° If the missionaries evoked the revolutionary period and reminded the population of its part in the sinful events of the previous twenty-five years, it was in order to use their confessions and expiation for these events to reestablish the sacred bond linking the people to their king and
their God, and to make possible, once again, the reign of their Most Christian Kings, according to the model of the Eucharist. If the amendes honorables intoned throughout the mission made this point clear, it was in the final erection of the mission crosses that this conception of monarchy was symbolically achieved in a way which left lasting traces for the
inhabitants of Marseilles. In preparation for the final procession and erection of the cross, the inhabitants were encouraged to decorate their homes with a mixture of Christian and monarchical emblems: white flags and crosses greeted the procession as it snaked its way for eight hours through the city of Marseilles. As it went by, spectators were exhorted to repeat the cry “Long live Jesus! and Long live the King!” The activities of the missionaries incited minor opposition, but nothing so serious as to compromise the essential success of the mission of 1820. One placard posted in the middle of the night threatened the arrival of troops who were purportedly preparing an attack on the women taking part in the exercises in the church; but before it could have any impact, this incitement to rumor and panic was quickly taken down by the authorities. Early in the mission some troublemakers disturbed the opening exercises in the church when they threw stones and dead and living cats into the middle of the congregation. In spite of the missionaries’ harangues against the sinful pleasures of the theater, the police reported that “the theater is frequented, as usual, and it does not appear that the mission has deprived it of its regular devotees.” The theatergoers also turned this venue against the missionaries when they requested a performance of the anticlerical Tartuffe, a request which was granted, giving the audience the opportunity to mock the visiting priests directly by greeting some of the passages of the play “with a bit more applause than was customary.” ©
A local liberal paper, Le Phocéen, attacked every aspect of the missionaries’ efforts. Reprinting a brief letter from bakers, the paper gave voice to the material concerns of citizens whose livelihoods were threatened by the missionaries’ determination to supplant local festivities associated with carnival. Another letter, this time from a bookstore owner,
The King’s Two Bodies 79 played with the epithet of “poisoner” used by clergymen to describe the philosophes, and turned it against the missionaries themselves: evoking the discord and disorder sown by the mission, the article appealed to public reason to decide “at this moment upon whom should justly fall the odious title of public poisoners?”” Echoing the language of Tartu/ffe already directed against the missionaries in the theater, the paper ridiculed the spectacular tactics of the so-called “sacred jugglers,” whose “profane pomp” had succeeded in “seducing” even the well-educated
population, who should have known better than to fall victim to the trickery of “impostors” and “hypocrites.” Linking the efforts of the missionaries in Marseilles to the national campaign of these so-called “apos-
tles of the counterrevolution,” the paper concluded with a letter from the Isére, which evoked memories of the worst violence of the revolutionary period in its chilling portrait of the dangers of the current religious revival: People who lived in Brittany in [17]93, recognized in the ceremonies of these traveling priests, the same gestures, the same signs of rallying which were in the departments of the West, when priests were at the head of the insurgents of the Vendée. .. . Armed fanatics, who with a candle in one hand and a red cross in the other, seemed to demand blood more than the remission of their sins; ... all of this creates consternation in the spirit of good citizens.
The national threat posed by the missionaries, and the fact that their activities could be read as a plot to undermine the solid and peaceful foun-
dations of the realm, were evoked as the author enjoined his readers to be vigilant and to help foil the plot of these so-called “Jesuits” by addressing themselves directly to their king: “If the representatives of France aren’t careful, the bands of Loyola will have done irreparable harm. A religious civil war is imminent in our region, and if courageous voices don’t warn the throne in time, this scourge produced by the mis-
sionaries will spread rapidly and touch all the points of the realm.” ° This threat seemed serious to inhabitants of Marseilles, a city which was particularly divided and violent between 1792 and 1794, but also more recently during the White Terror of 1814-1815. There is no evidence that the majority or even a significant minority of the population of Marseilles was involved in the protests against the missionaries, or shared the histrionic fears expressed in this particular newspaper; however, the belief that this could come to pass, that such an interpretation of the missionaries’ campaign could come to dominate local consciousness, led the local prefect into continuous negotiations
80 Politics as Theater with both his superiors in Paris and the members of the local church establishment regarding the pressing need to manage the mission. Even before the missionaries set foot in Marseilles, this Catholic and royalist prefect found himself in the embarrassing position of trying to block the mission from taking place; when that failed, the prefect focused his energy on policing the missions and on doing what he could to clearly differentiate the actions and views of the missionaries from those of the local civil administration, and thereby obviate any interpretation of the mission which could support fears of a clerical plot. The prefect tried, without success, to respond to protests concerning the timing of the mission by encouraging the missionaries to postpone their revival until after the carnival season. He tried to restrict the missionaries to the interiors of churches, to block evening services, and to prohibit special ceremonies, such as those held in the cemetery, from taking place. When outright prohibition failed, the prefect turned to more discreet measures to control and contain the mission’s message and potentially pernicious consequences. He placed secret agents at the ceremonies and negotiated
with the priests over the contents of their sermons and other details, such as the placement of the mission cross, always working to prevent the missionaries from sowing discord and giving troublemakers opportunities to express their overt opposition. Invitations from the clergy to participate in the mission were regularly refused by civil officials who saw the necessity of avoiding the public impression that the missionaries enjoyed their sanction. This was true for every one of their processions, but it was regarding the commemoration of the 21st of January, when the missionaries most clearly deviated from the regime’s official policy of oubli, that the prefect explained to the minister of the interior the need for the administration to distance itself from the mission: “The President of the Tribunals, the Mayor, and I were invited to the [missionaries’ religious ceremony on the 21st of January], but since among the public one would suppose that this ceremony was a continuation of the morning’s funeral service, .. . we thought it appropriate not to appear at the missionaries’ commemoration.” ? The archbishop of Aix, Monseigneur de Bausset-Roquefort, vociferously defended the missionaries in Marseilles, opposing every effort on the part of the civil authorities to intervene in the revival; in the correspondence through which he voiced his opposition to the prefect’s measures one can see the deeper political issues at stake in the orchestration of the mission. Inherent in the defense made by the archbishop was the portrait of a Christian nation, finally reunited under the spiritual guid-
The King’s Two Bodies 81 ance of its priests, with the official sanction and support of the restored Christian king. In response to quite specific problems raised by the prefect—that evening services offered occasions for disorder, that external processions and mission crosses offered opportunities for critics to at-
tack the church and therefore to sow disorder—the archbishop consistently denied the existence of any real opposition to Christianity resuming its proper role as the public religion, linking its members in a devotion to their God and king. Categorically denying any space for controversy, the archbishop simply refused to acknowledge any of the events of the past century which had served to make the relationship be-
tween religion and politics, between church and state, an arena for struggle. Refuting the prefect’s fears that the mission would sow discord, he explained: “Religion, very far from destroying order and public tranquility, has always contributed to the maintenance of both.” He saw in the local administrators’ efforts to police the mission nothing less than a return to the worst persecution of the revolutionary decade. The archbishop argued that to yield to any of the local officials’ demands, and to eliminate from the missions “all that is meant to touch, to edify, to attract, and to convert,” would be to lose for “a second time, a part of the spiritual advantages which we have had the happiness of recovering with the return of our very Christian king, and the grandson of St. Louis.” 1° The struggles between local and ecclesiastical officials were publicized to some extent by the liberal newspaper, which applauded the efforts of the local administration to temper the mission; but, according to police reports, the missionaries themselves made manifest their disagreements with the prefect and his subordinates, and flaunted their determination to carry on in the name of the higher authority of their king. Responding to the prefect’s request that the missionaries avoid preaching in the cemetery, Forbin-Janson apparently announced “that he had
no need to heed the local authority, that he had in his pocket orders from the king that permitted him to do anything he believed appropriate.” The police report acknowledged “that it is not certain that Monsieur de Forbin-Janson spread this news, but it is certain that he has always acted in a manner which would make everyone believe it.” 11 In a later report, quoting a supposedly reliable source, the prefect offered a portrait of the mission and the way it was being perceived in Marseilles, which gave him great cause for concern, and which obviously motivated his vigorous efforts to control the missionaries. The view that was circulating through town was that “since the Mission of France was authorized and recognized by the Government, the missionaries had powers
82 Politics as Theater which were so extensive, that when they arrived in a town to exercise their ministry, the local ecclesiastical authorities [and civil authorities]
had no authority.” At issue in the struggles between civil and ecclesiastical officials over the staging of the mission in Marseilles was the deeper question of the appropriate jurisdiction of missionaries, of the established church, and of the state (both the king and his representatives in the local arena) in spiritual and political matters. That spiritual matters were explicitly po-
litical was articulated in the sermons, rituals, and symbols of the missionaries, which consistently reiterated the message that the religious reconversion of the inhabitants of Marseilles was part of a broader political restoration of Christian kingship in France. The archbishop’s defense of the mission, and his refusal to yield to intervention on the part of the civil authorities, only emphasized the political stakes involved in this religious revival. Likewise, the prefect’s efforts to manage the mission, his sensitivity to the way in which the inhabitants of Marseilles might interpret the public spectacles of the mission, in particular in relationship to the civil authorities and the government in general, all bespeak an awareness of the political significance of the religious revival. For the prefect, the mission was a “political” problem because it threatened public order, because it sowed fears that the civil order, extending up to the king, was under the control of so-called “Jesuits,” and because the vision of the political order defining the missions was directly at odds with the vision the regime he represented was trying to propagate and enforce. As was true for many of his colleagues working within the civil administration, the prefect was trying to manage the staging of monarchy on the local level. Far from being exceptional, the key features of the mission of Mar-
seilles were reproduced all over France, in the context of more than 1,500 revivals staged in cities, smaller towns, and in the countryside over the course of the Restoration. This religious revival, generally supported
by the church establishment, was a mass movement which touched a majority of French men and women and which had profound political significance and consequences. Truly the mass spectacles of the Restoration period, drawing crowds in the tens of thousands, these missions helped to define the political culture of this period, offering as they did a particular conception of monarchy and its relationship to its past and
present subjects. Working to do nothing less than reconstruct the juridical, religious, and ceremonial foundations of monarchy “by the Grace of God,” under assault in France since the seventeenth century,
The King’s Two Bodies 83 the missionaries staked out a vast terrain in which the complex negotiations over the nature of legitimate authority would be played out over the fifteen years of the Restoration. The Missions to the Interior of the Restoration have been the focus of an ambitious study by the historian Ernest Sevrin, published in two volumes in the 1950s.!3 The first volume offers an overview of the missions, while the second covers the period between 1815 and 1822 in detail, go-
ing mission by mission. The author intended to follow this up with another volume on the rest of the Restoration but died before this work could be completed. While Sevrin acknowledged the political intentions and consequences of the missionaries’ efforts, this was secondary to this primary objective of documenting the spiritual goals and accomplishments of their national religious revival. In the following analysis I draw liberally upon the research already accomplished by Sevrin, particularly where the organizational history of the missions is concerned, and for the early missions of the period. But this is complemented by my own archival research, which is especially important for the years Sevrin did not complete. When I do use Sevrin’s material it is primarily to demonstrate
the political ambitions and consequences of this religious movement.“
Restoration France: A Spiritual Desert in Need of Missions Just as in Marseilles, where the mission of 1820 was requested by local ecclesiastical authorities and orchestrated in order to return the inhabitants of this city to the practices and beliefs of the national faith too long abandoned by its population, so was the national missionary movement of the Restoration inspired first and foremost by the pressing need to administer emergency aid to a country whose religious state was considered to be disastrous from all points of view. When the Bourbons resumed the throne in 1814 the Catholic church was in a weakened state, and the population was distanced from the practices and teachings of the national faith. Having lost its material base during the Revolution, when church lands and the lands of their émigré benefactors were sold off as biens nationaux, the church also suffered an acute crisis of per-
sonnel in the early nineteenth century: in 1815, 7,000 of the 50,000 ecclesiastical posts were vacant, and given the rate of deaths and ordinations, this number was expected to rise to 25,000 vacancies by 182021.15 In some dioceses as many as one-third to one-half of ecclesiastical
84 Politics as Theater posts were empty, making it impossible for the population to practice the rites of Catholicism properly, even if the people were so inclined.‘® But according to commentators from the period, the events of the previous century had also weakened this inclination. In the early years of the Restoration, the leading Catholic periodical, L’Ami de la Religion et du Roi, offered a portrait of the religious state which demonstrated the
pressing need for a revival. Apparently the rites of Catholicism had fallen into disuse where many women and, in some regions, the vast majority of men abstained from the sacraments. A large number of young
people and adults had not been confirmed, had never followed catechism, or had never taken their first communion; some had never even been baptized. Work on Sunday and blasphemies of all sorts had become
common. Irregular unions, invalid marriages (performed by constitutional priests), or marriages contracted on a purely civil basis during and after the Revolution had multiplied. This portrait of a nation of Christians, wandering on their own in a spiritual desert, led many to see missions as the sole means of saving France.!” As early as 1814, when one of the future leaders of the Missionaries of France, Forbin-Janson, went to see the pope to discuss his plans for a mission to China, the pontiff encouraged the priest to focus his energy at home: “Your project is good, but it is necessary first to offer our aid
to the populations which surround us. France needs missions for its people and retreats for its clergy.” 8 Forbin-Janson immediately returned to France, and, together with his colleagues Jean-Baptiste Rauzan and René-Michel Legris-Duval, presented a “Memoir for the King on the Es-
tablishment of Missions for France” to launch this much-needed religious revival. Underscoring the desperate need for a revival in their country in 1814, this memoir opened with the suggestion that “perhaps there is no nation whose political and moral state demands the aid of a spiritual mission more imperiously than France.” !? This proposal contained a specific program for a national missionary organization, with independent funds to respond especially to the large number of vacant ecclesiastical posts, and also for the reestablishment of the Calvary of Mont-Valérien outside Paris as their operational base, a venue long favored by the royal family for its spiritual exercises, and a site where during the Revolution the calvary itself had been destroyed, the resident priests chased away, and the church attacked. Louis XVIII apparently read this memoir with interest, accorded an audience to its authors, and generally approved their plan, acknowledging that when he
The King’s Two Bodies , 85 was in exile he had himself conceived of the project of rechristianizing France through missions. The budgetary details were avoided in these early negotiations, but the king immediately gave his support for the plan to restore Mont-Valérien.*° By 1815 the founders of the Missions of France, having recognized the Abbé Rauzan as their leader, submitted their project for a missionary movement to the most distinguished priests in Paris; the vicaires capitulaires of Paris approved their plan on the 9th of January 1815, arguing “that missions would be the most favorable means, perhaps the only means, to shore up at the same time religion and the social order.” 7! They needed money, they needed recruits; to publicize their project and get both, they published a prospectus in L’Ami de la Religion et du Roi. They established a committee of women, patronesses of the missions, to help with fund raising. Because MontValérien was still in ruins in 1815, and therefore uninhabitable, the mis-
sionaries took up temporary residence in Paris, in a house at 8, Rue Notre Dame des Champs; the rent for this first transitional year was liberally covered by the king. Although they began to organize revivals immediately in the areas surrounding Paris, the Hundred Days interrupted the missionaries’ plans, which were taken up anew as soon as Napoleon was defeated a second time. Between January and September of 1816 Mont-Valérien was restored, first the calvary, then the three chapels; the inauguration of all these was celebrated on the 14th of September 1816 at the Festival of the Exaltation of the Holy Cross. Thereafter, services were conducted regularly, with curés from Paris accompanying their congregations to this site to renew the ancient devotion of previous kings and their Parisian subjects to this particular cross. But in order to make Mont-Valérien the center of a national missionary organization, a proper seminary for training and organizing missions for the whole of France, Rauzan submitted a request for legal authorization, which he believed would encourage bishops to send him recruits, and also garner for his organization the financial base the missionaries needed to operate. Therefore a new memoir was penned by Rauzan, with the intention of firmly establishing his Society of Missionaries. Louis XVIII responded favorably, and in an ordinance signed on the 25th of September 1816, he accorded the missionaries legal status. The text of this ordinance is interesting, because it clearly expresses the king’s support for the missions on the grounds of their necessity, related explicitly to the severe shortage of ecclesiastical personnel in
86 Politics as Theater France. In the king’s words, “the small number of priests attached to particular churches being insufficient to attend to the needs of the dioceses of our realm, and the Society of Priests of the Missions of France, offering a powerful assistance to the curés and parishes deprived of pas-
tors... [this society] is hereby authorized.” But even in this early ordinance, the king clearly circumscribed the missionaries’ action, insisting that they were always to operate with the explicit “authorization of the archbishops and bishops of our realm,” and that missions could furthermore be sent out only in response to “the demands of bishops in the dioceses where they would operate, and after our authorization.” 2” Thus, while acknowledging the need to minister to the population’s spiritual needs in light of the large number of vacant ecclesiastical posts, the king carefully limited the missionaries to working under the auspices of the established church, and with his, the king’s, express authorization.”? These terms would become extremely important over the course of the Restoration, when a variety of organizations orchestrated their missions with or without this national organization being approved by the king, and when the missionaries in general began to exceed their initial, modest spiritual mission of attending to their flock in the absence of pastors.
If the Missionaries of France was the only society to enjoy official royal authorization, many other associations of priests worked in concert with this group as well as on their own to rechristianize France between 1815 and 1830. The Jesuits constituted the most important group to assist in the national missionary movement in these years, although, by direct orders from the king, they were to do so, “not in the name or the habit of their order,” but under the authority of bishops, who were free to use them liberally as educators or as missionaries.7* Given the long history of distrust vis-a-vis the Jesuits, this was clearly a prudent measure; but as we already saw in the case of Marseilles (where Jesuits were not involved), it did not prevent critics of the missions from
associating the revivals of these years with the Order of Loyola, the hated hommes noirs castigated throughout the Restoration by the liberal press and by popular songwriters such as Pierre Jean de Béranger. Particularly after the Pere Guyon, one of the most important leaders and
orators serving the Missionaries of France, became a Jesuit in 1821, it became easier to associate the missions of the Restoration with this hated order, presumed to be operating under direct orders from the pope in spite of the king’s efforts to contain their spiritual ministries within the framework of the missions authorized and approved by the French church hierarchy.”°
The King’s Two Bodies 87 The other groups of missionaries which participated in the national
movement were regional, or restricted to a diocese. The Oblats de Marie, for example, which cooperated with the Missionaries of France to organize the mission of Marseilles in 1820, led missions throughout
the Restoration under the leadership of the Abbé Eugéne de Mazenod, but they restricted their activities to the southwest of France. Likewise, missionary organizations in Besancon, Lyons, Tours, Toulouse, and Rennes worked in concert with the national organization, but mainly orchestrated missions in their respective regions. This is not because some of the leaders of these regional organizations did not have a vision or ambitions to train missionaries for:a national movement; in fact there were many efforts to found such seminaries, but they all failed.** There were many other smaller organizations aiding in missions restricted to a single diocese or even a single parish; Sevrin identifies more than fortyfive such organizations at the local level.*” Generally these were not long-standing organizations but rather fleeting associations of missionaries brought together for individual missions. These were often organized by bishops who took advantage of the funds made available by the king to pay for auxiliary priests, or prétres de secours.*® While a huge variety of priests, of different ages, regions, and orders, participated in the missionary movement, there are certain features they all shared, which undoubtedly gave this revival a certain spirit. Most important, the older missionaries had almost all been in exile or hiding during the Revolution, and if they returned during the Empire they were usually battling against the Concordat as they tried to orchestrate missions in those years. The younger missionaries, while having no direct experience of the Revolution, or even the Empire, tended to share the radical counterrevolutionary stance typical of the older priests and émigrés. In general they were driven more by moral fervor than by intellectual or scholarly prowess.*? In their efforts to orchestrate local revivals they were supported by a church hierarchy which was increasingly noble and outspokenly opposed to the legacy of the French Revolution.*° Between 1815 and 1830, over 1,500 missions were orchestrated in France.*! Of the eighty dioceses in France in 1821, only one, Cambrai, was untouched by missions. Some regions were more favored by missionaries than others, with Provence, Brittany, and the Lorraine enjoy-
ing the most active and repeated revivals. While missions in departmental capitals, capitals of arrondissements, and bishoprics figure most largely in the archival evidence and periodical press, the majority of missions appear to have taken place in the countryside.** The number of
88 Politics as Theater people participating in these missions was prodigious, by all accounts. Missionaries recorded the numbers of people confessing and participating in mass communions, as well as the numbers of people participating in or at least attending their outdoor processions; as civil officials tried to keep track of the missionaries’ activities and preserve order, they too regularly reported on participation in different aspects of the mission. The numbers of those confessing and taking the sacraments stretch from the hundreds into the thousands depending on the mission and the size of the local populations. The churches were usually filled to capacity throughout the mission, and even in towns where the missions were declared “less successful” by their supporters the participants and spectators for the outdoor procession as much as doubled the populations of towns. When a particularly talented orator (such as the Pére Guyon) gave a sermon the crowd could swell to 60,000, as it did in Avignon in 1819.33 If audiences of that number were rare, crowds between 10,000 and 20,000 were quite common. In Arles there were reports of 12,000; in Blois, 14,000; in Carcassonne and Clermont-Ferrand, 20,000; and in Cherbourg, 25,000. Ascertaining the relationship between the missionaries, sent out by a wide variety of organizations, and the established church during the Restoration is a complicated matter; however, in general, the rules set up by the king in his authorization of the Missionaries of France in 1816 held sway throughout the period, and the missions were therefore only permitted with the explicit authorization of the local church hierarchy. In large cities missions took place because they were requested by the bishops, or at least approved if the initiative did not come from them. In Sevrin’s analysis of the missions, he identified only two of the 118 resident bishops who were openly hostile to the missions, 22 whose opinion is unknown, and 94 who requested or authorized the missions.** Hostility to the missionaries seemed more widespread at the lower levels of the church hierarchy: parish clergymen often opposed missions, or sided with their congregations in criticizing specific aspects of the missions once they were under way.*> But overall, it would be impossible to explain the sheer quantity and geographical range of the missions without assuming the basic material and spiritual support of the established church at the local level. While the variety of organizations involved in orchestrating the mis-
sions and the particularities of the contexts in which they were conducted necessarily distinguished individual missions from one another, there was sufficient consistency among them to justify talking about
The King’s Two Bodies 89 them together as constituting a national movement. If Ernest Sevrin separated his monumental analysis of the missions into two separate volumes, one of which looked at the missions taken as a whole, it was precisely because there was a “mass of details which characterized all of the missions.” 3° Everywhere, one sees the same daily rituals in churches and retreats; the same extravagant ceremonies (similar in their timing, their content, and the ways in which they were orchestrated); the same con-
tent in sermons and, most important, the same religious and political message which all these tactics were deployed to propagate. It is precisely by attending to such “details” that it will be possible to understand how this national mass movement shaped the political culture of the Restoration in ways which hitherto have been unappreciated.
Rechristianizing France: Remaking the Body of the Church Conceived with the intention of ministering to a population in desperate need of spiritual guidance, the missions of the Restoration, in Sevrin’s view, had first and foremost a religious goal: to reintroduce an increas-
ingly incredulous population to the teachings of the national faith, to administer the sacraments too long ignored, in short, to convince the people of France to accept Jesus Christ as their savior and to live their lives in accordance with the sacramental requirements of the Catholic church. Missionaries “multiplied catechisms, commentaries on scriptures and simple instructions, interactive sermons, retreats; even their ceremonies were examples of the doctrine in action”; everything the missionaries did was with the intention of “introducing the knowledge of religious truths, forgotten by some, and never known by others.” 3” This educational agenda was central to the missionaries and is evident in the wide range of tactics they adopted when orchestrating individual missions. Morning services were usually aimed at the lower classes, those with little if any education and exposure to catechism; instruction in this context was straightforward, and communicated through simple, engaging stories and anecdotes. Formal catechism was aimed at
all social groups, at children, of course, but also at adult men and women deprived of religious education in their childhood, and requiring basic instruction before they could participate in their own communion during the course of the mission.*® Commentaries on biblical texts and explanations of basic Christian truths were included in special retreats
90 Politics as Theater aimed at particular groups, such as women, prisoners, or soldiers, and were reiterated in general sermons throughout the mission. Evening lectures were aimed at the more educated population, presumed to have been turned away from Catholicism by the teachings of the philosophes. In this context the missionaries directly addressed the challenges issued by writers like Voltaire and Jean-Jacques Rousseau, insisting upon the existence and attributes of God, the necessity of revelation, the authenticity of the Holy Scriptures, and the value of their prophecies; they preached about the life and miracles of the Savior, his resurrection, the distinct character of his Church and the superiority of his doctrine over those of other religions.*? They suggested books their followers could read and offered to discuss further points of doctrine with individuals interested in working through their doubts. Instruction in the truths of the Catholic religion as against the teachings of the previous century, or simply in relation to the usual doubts which kept men and women from accepting Christ as their savior, were also orchestrated in the context of conférences dialoguées, or interactive sermons. Here one missionary would present a basic teaching of the church, only to be challenged by another priest, carefully placed among the auditors for this purpose. The goal, however, was not merely to instruct the population in the
forgotten teachings of the Catholic church, but to convert. “One preached, one catechized only to convert, to resuscitate a Christian vitality in the souls, in the family, in society itself.” *° Conversion could not be accomplished merely by offering instruction in the teachings of the church and by appealing to reason; what was necessary, above all, was to move the population, to appeal to its emotions, to incite faith and a belief in the need to accept the body of Christ. This related but far more important goal inspired the pomp and theatricality of the missions. During the six to eight weeks of a typical mission, extraordinary efforts were made to engage a majority of the population in a moving spectacle of piety and public devotion to Jesus Christ. Upon arrival, missionaries immediately solicited recruits for their choirs. They distributed and sold booklets of canticles, and willingly borrowed profane melodies to make their sacred message more appealing to their followers. While they assiduously pursued their instructional efforts in services and retreats, they also deployed enormous resources to orchestrate more spectacular demonstrations of their message. For processions, members of the community were enjoined to decorate their homes with appropriate monarchical and Christian emblems, often sold in the context of the
The King’s Two Bodies 91 mission by traveling salesmen who accompanied the missionaries. Large groups of men were recruited to carry the massive mission crosses; thousands of followers were incorporated into these processions; and temporary scaffolding was erected to allow thousands more to participate in choirs, or merely to witness these extravagant spectacles of piety.
But the most important thing was to get the population to take the sacraments and renew their devotion to Christ; to this end the missionaries tended to employ threats and terrifying tactics. While this was represented most clearly in their infamous ceremonies in cemeteries, where they preached before an open grave with a skull in hand about the hor-
rors of eternal damnation, fire and brimstone sermons which underscored the consequences of living outside the church constituted a regular feature of all the missionaries’ religious services. The goal of the preachers was to make their auditors tremble, to shock their listeners, and thereby to move them to accept the teachings of Christ.*! But even as they clearly articulated the need for people to accept the Host and devote their lives to Christ, their austere moral message made it difficult for most French men and women to confess and enter the ranks of the saved. In contrast to missionaries in the eighteenth century who were
afraid to go against the habits and practices of the population, who combined a positive view of the dogma and principles of Catholicism with a kind of complacency about the morality of their auditors, the “missionaries of the Restoration knew no such timidity. Whatever their audience, they preached dogma and morality integrally.”** The missionaries declared war on popular festive culture—on “pagan” celebrations of saints’ days, on the excesses of carnival, on dancing. They denounced all forms of nonreligious entertainment as debauchery, attacking more private forms of leisure such as the reading of novels, as well as public pleasures enjoyed in cafés, cabarets, and theaters. The missionaries did not only preach against these sins in the abstract; they willingly made examples of individuals in the congregation, singling them out during their sermons and posting names of sinful members of the community in town squares. While they were in town they tried to have the theater season suspended, and to have cafés and cabarets closed; whenever possible, they scheduled their missions to interrupt the “sacrilegious” festivities associated with carnival. In Brittany, where the tradition of celebrating the festival of the dead was more popular than elsewhere in France, the service in the cemetery was always the preferred occasion for missionaries to bring home their severe message. The following sermon, given by the famous Abbé de La
92 Politics as Theater Mennais in 1819, gives a sense of the tenor of these terrifying ceremonies. As the terrible prédicateur took one skull after another into his hands and interrogated them before his listeners, he evoked the whole range of sins which could condemn one to eternal damnation: QUESTION: You, Who are you? ANSWER: Iam a father, an honest man. QUESTION: What is your situation? ANSWER: I am in hell. QUESTION: Why? ANSWER: I had children. I neglected to instruct them and to have them baptized; they are lost; God holds me responsible. I am damned. QUESTION: — And you, who are you?
ANSWER: I am the wife of this man; I shared his errors, I share his punishment. I am damned. QUESTION: And you? ANSWER: My father and my mother have responded to you: I am damned.
Throwing the three skulls back into the grave, back to the hell from which they will never return, the Abbé de La Mennais turned his attention to the evil rich man, the evil poor man, the usurer, the young woman dead at twenty who assiduously practiced the sacraments but was too vain, too attached to dancing, and the working man who got drunk af-
ter mass on Sunday. Ending with a positive example, the preacher showed the way to avoid the fate of these skulls: QUESTION: You, the last, who are you? ANSWER: Just a poor wretch; I sinned my whole life, but I have made penitence, and so I am saved!
MORAL: Hear that, sinners, and rejoice! Let this fill your hearts with hope! We have all sinned; I perhaps more than you; but let us repent, and we will be saved. Let us swear to repent on the tombs of the dead! #
This austere moral message was seconded by many within the church
establishment who penned pastoral letters during the Restoration, or mandements, which clearly articulated the stricter requirements of what many came to call the “new Catholicism” of this period.** These con-
tained provisions which had a direct impact on the personal lives of Catholics for they laid down strict rules limiting access to the sacraments of baptism, first communion, marriage, and extreme unction. The mandement of the archbishop of Rouen, published in 1825, was typical in this regard. It threatened parishioners who had not recently taken the
The King’s Two Bodies 93 sacraments with excommunication; it prevented noncommunicants from acting as godparents; children of civil, but not religious, marriages were
declared bastards; local curés were encouraged to post the names of noncommunicants and those living in sin (or in “concubinage”) on the church wall. This religious “rigorism,” as Sevrin called it, or “fanaticism,” as critics called it, was central to the missionaries’ message. If members of the church establishment such as the archbishop of Rouen were equally avid in their support of this rigorism, it was with the missionaries that this “new Catholicism” was indelibly associated during the course of the Restoration.* Not all members of the church establishment agreed with the missionaries’ moral crusade. Some merely questioned the sagacity of employing threats and terrifying tactics, arguing that sweeter methods often led to more durable results. Many questioned the excessive attacks of the missionaries on the simple pleasures of the people. For example, Monseigneur Salmon du ChAatellier, the bishop of Evreux, responded to his grand vicar’s request to invite the Missionaries of France to give a mission in his diocese with the following reservations: “I fear, my dear Matthew, that the missionary goes overboard in his rigorism. .. . For example, where dancing is concerned, even the most rigorous missionaries acknowledge that dancing is not by nature evil. Yet they forbid it absolutely, and exclude from the sacraments everyone who does not take a solemn vow to renounce this practice forever. This is what I call a pious scandal, and I would prefer to renounce any hope of having missions rather than allow them to reproduce this scandal in my diocese.” *6 The missionaries’ combination of rigorism and terrifying tactics is
what prefects often cited as what was most dangerous about the revival. Complaining about the mission in Nevers in 1817, the prefect reproached the missionaries for “too readily employing somber images and religious terror.” 4” The prefect of the Sadne-et-Loire described the missionaries preaching in Autun in the same terms: “they are all alike in the ardor of their invectives, in the exaggeration of the threats by which they terrify their auditors.” +8 But it was the following report from the Allier in 1817 which best evoked the dangers posed by the religious intolerance of the missionaries as the writer conjured an image of their sowing discontent all over the country: Diverse reports have come in on the effect produced by the missions of Nevers, Bourges, Clermont and Grenoble, and these are ever less reassuring since they come from reasonable people, worthy of our faith. It is especially the religious intolerance of the missionaries, . . . the prohibition to bury, the
94 Politics as Theater invitations to rebaptize those who were first baptized during the Revolution, .. . which generally produce a bad effect on the population.*
Not since the Counter-Reformation of the seventeenth century had the population of France experienced a protracted effort on the part of the clergy to restore a strict adherence to the sacraments, in combination with such an austere moral order. The parallels and contrasts between the revival of the nineteenth century and that of the seventeenth is apt on many levels. As in the seventeenth century, the missionaries’ efforts did produce a wave of conver-
sions and a renewed attachment on the part of the population to a rigorous practice of Catholicism.°° But as was true for the CounterReformation, the religious revival of the Restoration also produced the opposite effect, driving many French men and women away from the rites of Catholicism. Especially because the missionaries often came from outside the parish, and were seen to represent a Catholicism which did not conform to local mores and practices, a strand of anticlericalism emerged from this movement; a kind of nostalgic view of an “old” Catholicism came to prevail as people grew more overtly critical of the “new” Catholicism of the missionaries, so easily characterized as “foreign” to the true practice of their faith.*! If their severe moral message made it clear that embracing Christ was no easy task, in strictly religious terms, the missionaries also propagated an explicitly political message: consecrating one’s life to Christ also required a renunciation of the events and legacies of the past century associated with the Enlightenment and especially the French Revolution. Or, said another way, the missionaries sought to cleanse the spiritual body of anyone who bore the sinful stain of these events. Thus the sacraments were also denied to those who remained attached to the ideas of the philosophes, had fought on behalf of the Revolution and the Empire, or remained unrepentant about their participation in any aspect of the Revolution from acquiring biens nationaux, to taking an oath to the revolutionary government (if one was a priest), to accepting the sacraments from such “illegitimate” priests. In spite of the fact that the pope himself had accepted the biens nationaux and the constitutional priests as legitimate when he accepted Napoleon’s Concordat of 1801, the missionaries remained intransigent on the “political” sins which justified excluding parishioners from the Kingdom of Christ.>* The road to salvation charted by the missionaries required taking a clear political stance:
there was no middle ground. Either one confessed and repented for
The King’s Two Bodies 95 every aspect of this sinful past and actively embraced Christ, or one did not. In their sermons, the missionaries constantly inveighed against this wide range of political sins. In the words of the prefect of the HautesAlpes: The evils of the Revolution constitute the text of their sermons. In front of the military personnel of the garrison, most of whom were officers or soldiers under Napoleon, the army is represented as having exercised nothing but plunder and brigandage; those who participated in the war against the counterrevolutionary Vendée heard themselves called cannibals. In a sermon on restitution, people who had legally repaid their debts with assignats were invited to cover the difference which resulted from the depreciation of this paper.>?
Everywhere the missionaries went they denounced biens nationaux; they preached against those who participated in the “sacrilegious” traffic in church lands, and they actively encouraged restitution, serving as mediators in local negotiations between acquirers of biens nationaux
and their original owners. Constitutional priests, another sinful blot in France’s history, were singled out in sermons, particularly in towns where such priests continued to minister to the local population. Missionaries regularly identified individuals with known ties to the revolutionary cause in order to dramatize their message that there was no possibility of joining the ranks of the saved if one did not publicly confess
for past political sins connected to the Revolution. In Arles, for example, visiting missionaries made a public display of overriding the decision of the local curé and refusing to grant one prominent member of the community burial rights, because in spite of his public support for the king and his clear disdain for the emperor, he had nonetheless participated in the Revolution and made no effort to conceal his continued commitment to the ideals of the philosophes. In spite of efforts by local civil and ecclesiastical officials to intervene in his behalf, he was denied the rites of extreme unction and a proper Christian burial.>* The campaign of the missionaries against “irregular unions” offers a good example of the spiritual path from individual revolutionary sinfulness to salvation, and of the tactics employed by these priests to purify the spiritual body of the church. Both couples who had been married by constitutional priests and couples who had only contracted their unions
civilly were encouraged to remarry with the benediction of a proper priest. The missionaries made it clear that those who refused to do so would be denied the sacraments and would not be able to act as god-
96 Politics as Theater parents and that their children would be deemed illegitimate. The missionaries had some spectacular successes, as in the town of Salies-deBéarn in 1818, where 238 couples, previously married in civil ceremonies, presented themselves at the church to receive matrimonial rites. All over the country, couples renewed their vows with the benediction of the church because it was the only way to salvation.» As they made their way around France, teaching the forgotten truths of Catholicism, the missionaries at once encouraged parishioners to participate in the baptismal, matrimonial, and mortuary rites of the faith, and excluded from the sacraments all who refused to renounce either their personal immoral pleasures or their political connections to the Revolution and its legacy; in so doing, the missionaries sought to purify and remake the body of the church, and they also gave this “cleansing” a clear political spin.°° But their political ambitions extended far beyond separating individual sinners from their past political errors in order to ensure their salvation; their efforts point to the more ambitious goal of purging the nation of the communal sins committed over the course of the eighteenth century in order to enable the monarch to reign in France “by the Grace of God.” The public sphere, secularized over the course of the eighteenth century and brutally dechristianized during the revolutionary interlude, had to be remade in a Christian mold: mass confessions for the sins of the past, a thorough purging of the symbols and artifacts of this period, and an active rechristianization of the landscape were all necessary corollaries of this more ambitious project.
Remaking the Body of the Nation: The Imperative of Expiation For the missionaries orchestrating this national revival, the return of the Bourbons did not merely represent an opportunity to rechristianize the kingdom under the auspices of a regime sympathetic to their spiritual mission; for them the restoration of their monarch corresponded to the deliverance of the nation from the grip of the Antichrist, and offered the possibility of building a true Christian kingdom on earth. At the heart of their campaign was an eschatological interpretation of French history of the previous centuries, voiced in popular prophetic literature of the period, and constantly reiterated and dramatized in the missionaries’ sermons and ceremonies: France had sinned during the Enlightenment, was chastised during the Revolution, and in 1814 was finally delivered
The King’s Two Bodies 97 back into the hands of the Bourbon kings, who could at last resume their role as leaders of the Christian world.*’ It is impossible to understand the nature of the religious revival of the Restoration without recogniz-
ing that helping the monarch to realize this prophecy was absolutely central to its mission. This spiritual and fundamentally political quest created two critical imperatives for the missionaries. First, if the people of France were to enjoy the fruits of deliverance they would first have to purge themselves, not merely as individuals but, more importantly, as a nation, of the sins which had produced their nation’s fall; in short, deliverance required confession and expiation for the sins of the past and especially for the sins committed during the Revolution. Second, in addition to leading the nation in cleansing citizens’ souls and the landscape of all signs of this sinful episode, the missionaries had to work to reconstitute a spiritual and juridical framework which would allow Christian monarchy to flourish. This double imperative, of expiation for the revo-
lutionary past and a thorough restoration of the foundations of Christian monarchy, imbued the revival with a radical counterrevolutionary mission.
Certainly the time seemed ripe for a thorough remaking of the body
politic: a Bourbon king had just been restored to the throne, and Catholicism to its status as the religion of the state. The king himself seemed to support the missionaries’ quest to rechristianize France. Yet the political vision at the heart of the missions was radically different from that of the state: a huge chasm separated the moderate intentions of the king to rule over France under the auspices of a modern, secularized form of monarchy, and the missionaries’ more radical desire to restore monarchy “by the Grace of God.” Publicly the missionaries never acknowledged the differences which distinguished them from the regime they so ardently supported; on the contrary, they did everything in their power to give the impression that they were faithfully representing their king in the context of their missions. If civil officials tried to interfere with missions in the name of social order, citing the very real disorder
which missionaries appeared to be stirring up, missionaries and their supporters in the church simply behaved and spoke as if the officials in question were exaggerating the problems caused by the missions and falsely representing the desires of their ruler. Again and again they would
make arguments of the sort we have already seen in the archbishop’s defense of the mission in Marseilles: first, that religion, far from creating disorder, always helped to ensure social peace; and second, that to limit their ceremonies in‘any way, to temper their counterrevolution-
98 Politics as Theater ary message, would be, on the one hand, to submit themselves once again to a kind of persecution they had not known since the Revolution,
and, on the other hand, to relinquish the hope of achieving the full benefits of the return of “our very Christian king, and the grandson of St. Louis.” °°
The critical emphasis the missionaries placed on their outdoor, public ceremonies must be understood in the light of their determination to use their missions to dramatize the fact that for them, Article 6 of the Charter, which restored Catholicism as the religion of the state, represented the dawn of a new age, when France as a nation could finally be returned to Christ its Savior. In general, the missionaries’ insistence upon spectacular outdoor processions and their consistent efforts to integrate civil officials and the local population served the same purpose: they enabled the missionaries to speak for the monarch and his government and to define the spiritual and political body of the nation.*? It was by taking over the public space, with the apparent sanction of the state, that they put into effect their radical counterrevolutionary project of remaking the body of the nation according to a Christian model. It was the bishop of Strasbourg, in an 1825 mandement announcing the arrival of a mission in his town, who expressed the political ambitions involved in the outdoor ceremonies of the missionaries when he explicitly compared them with the “odious” and “impious” festivals of the French Revolution. “As for the processions, the singing of canticles, the festivals of the missions, are these ceremonies not as noble, as useful as the bizarre processions of impiety . . . from the disastrous times of the Revolution?” © Recalling the festivals of the revolutionaries, the bishop underscored the violence and unhappiness into which this sacrilegious project had plunged France. He did so in order to emphasize the peace and healing which proper religious ceremonies would make possible. But at the same time he drew attention to the ambitious agenda at the heart of the revolutionaries’ festive project, namely, the effort to remake France in a republican mold and to transfer the sacrality of Catholicism and monarchy to the secular terrain of the Republic.*! In evoking the political goals of the revolutionaries’ festival project, the bishop also acknowledged the ongoing political battle in which he and the soon-toarrive missionaries were engaged. His mandement was defensive; the “odious” spectacles of the Revolution may have become a thing of the past, but the spirit which guided them, the philosophy which enthroned the deity of Reason, continued to stand in the way of the reconsecration of the public sphere to God. In his words:
The King’s Two Bodies 99 Philosophy proclaimed these odious ceremonies, disgusting for their impiety and cynicism, to be the triumph of reason; it substituted for the hymns of our
temples revolutionary songs which foretold the slaughter of a misguided people. And after dragging us through the mire and blood, it dares to continue to censor our ceremonies, dedicated to Christian worship, where everything breathes of piety and peace, and which brings man closer to God, and leads him to practice his duties. Oh! it should cry for all the ills it has made France suffer instead of insulting the religion which can heal our wounds and efface the traces of our sufferings.
The specific aspect of “philosophy” which the bishop was contending with was the freedom of religion, the tolerance of the Charter which, in a town like his, with a significant Protestant and Jewish population, made public spectacles of Catholicism of questionable legality. The Concordat clearly stated that in towns with significant non-Catholic populations it was up to the civil authorities to determine whether outdoor public ceremonies threatened the freedom of religion which the state was committed to protecting. It was this law that administrators continually cited in their efforts to prohibit the outdoor ceremonies of the missionaries. In fact, there was a disingenuousness in the bishop’s depiction of the ceremonies of the missions as bringing nothing but peace, as merely allowing the state religion to represent itself on the streets in public. His comparison of these ceremonies with the festivals of the French Revolution was more apt, as it acknowledged the huge stakes involved in the public spectacles of the missionaries, as well as the huge wounds and controversies which they were designed to reopen. For just like the festivals of the revolutionary years, the ceremonies of the missionaries were self-consciously deployed to encourage the population as a whole to participate in rites and rituals that would reconfigure the sacrality of the public sphere—only this time in response to the “sacrilege” of recent decades. Like the “odious” festivals of reason, these ceremonies offered songs, symbols, and particular communal rituals, organized around a revived Christian and monarchical calendar, all to counter the ambitious cultural project of the revolutionary decade. But their spiritual mission required nothing less: for if they were to save France, and enable their monarch to resume his role as leader of the Christian world, they had to remake the body politic, and that required first and foremost a public confrontation with the Revolution and its legacies. At the heart of their missions, and most beautifully expressed in their public, participatory ceremonies, was the imperative of expiation: to
100 Politics as Theater enable France to achieve salvation, to make it possible for the king to rule “by the Grace of God,” the nation as a whole had to accept responsibility for the sins of the Revolution, publicly confess, and erect symbols of repentance and renewed devotion to the true God and his representative on earth, the king. Expiation required remembering the sins of the past in detail because without remembering there could be no
repentance and, therefore, no salvation. What this translated into in practice was a religious revival in which missionaries traveled around France doing everything they could to remind the population of the revolutionary interlude in chilling, graphic detail. They raised the specter of the Enlightenment so that it could be defeated in brilliant autos-dafé. In town after town they reopened old controversies: between constitutional and refractory priests and their congregations, between acquir-
ers of biens nationaux and the owners whom they had despoiled, between supporters of the Revolution (local representatives to the Convention who actively participated in the Revolution, military personnel who fought in the revolutionary or imperial armies) and royalists (es-
pecially those who had led the White Terror of 1815). Missionaries evoked the local geography of the past twenty-five years, erecting mission crosses where a cross had been violently attacked during the Revolution or, more commonly, where the guillotine had stood during the worst period of revolutionary violence. Sites where liberty trees or statues honoring revolutionaries stood also served as appropriate venues for
reconsecrating the landscape to Christ and their king. Again, for the missionaries, the point of this graphic remembering was to make national redemption possible; true social peace and reconciliation could come only after confrontation with and repentance for the sins of the past. If the missionaries saw the opening of wounds and the revival of painful memories as a necessary evil on the road to salvation, civil officials in the Restoration were less sanguine, and in their reports they
were more blatant and rueful about the political ramifications of the missionaries’ spiritual quest. They complained about “cinders being ignited” and fresh wounds being reopened, and they expressed concern that the missions exacerbated rather than resolved the complex struggles which dated back to the revolutionary period. The prefect of Allier expressed such fears in a letter to the archbishop of his diocese in 1819: Given the actual state of spirits, still heated and embittered by long dissensions, opposed interests, animosities which have not yet died out, shouldn’t we be afraid that a public animated discussion of several delicate and controversial issues will produce disquiet and reawaken disorder and hatred?
The King’s Two Bodies LOI When it is necessary to make an effort to encourage union and peace, shouldn’t we avoid anything which goes against our simple habits, any sort of spectacle which seeks to inflame the spirit of the people? °
If the missionaries and the prelates supporting them denied such pernicious effects, and repeatedly reiterated the spiritual justification for their expiatory project, a closer look at the missionaries’ public ceremonies, in combination with the civil officials’ reports on their consequences, allows us to see the degree to which the public spectacles of the missions constituted a full-scale, counterrevolutionary response to the ambitious cultural agenda of their revolutionary predecessors. Right in its evocation of the contrast with the festivals of the French Revolution, the bishop of Strasbourg’s depiction of the public ceremonies of the mission helps us to appreciate that in the context of the Restoration it was not the regime but the missionaries participating in this national religious revival who responded most directly, most vociferously, to the counterrevolutionary imperative to undo the cultural and political damage done by the revolutionary period and to thoroughly remake and resacralize the public sphere in the name of Christ and their king. If the revolutionary epoch was the sinful period for which the nation had to accept responsibility and to repent, the sinful spirit of the Enlightenment had led France into the grip of the Antichrist, and so it too had to be evoked, denounced, and purged if the nation was to find its way to salvation. Although the missionaries regularly condemned the poisonous eighteenth-century writings from the pulpit, pointing in particular to the writings of Jean-Jacques Rousseau and Voltaire, they dramatized the spiritual significance of their assaults in the expiatory rites
orchestrated around their public destruction. As Martyn Lyons has shown, missionaries staged autos-da-fé throughout the Restoration in which mauvais livres were voluntarily handed over to the missionaries so that they could be publicly destroyed by fire. The church establishment clearly supported this assault on mauvais livres, particularly in light of the cheap new editions of the philosophes which were appearing with great frequency after 1817: the vicaires-generaux of the Paris diocese issued a Lenten mandement condemning philosophical works.™ Indeed the missionaries even asked the king to step in and censor the new editions of the philosophes, and thereby revive his proper role as definer and defender of the sacred in his kingdom. In fact, the king refused, but by orchestrating their expiatory autos-da-fé, as often as possible with the participation of local civil officials, and by concluding their ceremonies
102 Politics as Theater with the amendes honorables for sins against God and their king, the missionaries brought home the message that if the king was not in fact punishing blasphemy and sacrilege in the manner of his forefathers, they would perform such rites on his behalf.* Like the mauvais livres, the wide range of sins committed during the
revolutionary period had to be attacked from the pulpit; but more important, they had to be given tangible form so that participants in the mission could take responsibility for them and publicly repent. Like the real books that owners voluntarily handed over to the missionaries for public expiatory rites, individuals with direct ties to the revolutionary period were singled out so that they could serve as living embodiments of sinfulness, repentance, and redemption. In Valence, for example, much publicity was given to the conversion of M. Marbos during the course of the mission precisely because he had been a constitutional priest risen to the level of a bishop and because he had served in the Con-
vention which condemned the King to death, although he had not himself voted in favor of regicide.®* In towns with military garrisons, missionaries preached especially vociferously against the soldiers who had served during the Revolution and Empire, “fighting against the army of their God and their King,” and they made special efforts to get officers from the army and from the National Guard to participate in the mission and wear the sign of the revival, the little cross, on the lapels of their uniforms.®’ Purchasers of biens nationaux were encouraged to offer reparations to their prior owners, and public spectacles were conducted around reconciliations. In Salies-de-Béarn, for example, “restitutions were made and then those who had been enemies publicly reconciled, some inside the church itself.” 68 In Avignon in 1819, a more dramatic example of the same was cited by a missionary: “one citizen, whom another had wronged during the Revolution, said to him, ‘I congratulate you, and I pardon you for all your wrongs against me, as I hope that God will pardon me.’” ©? Whenever possible, individuals repenting for revolutionary crimes were integrated into public processions in ways which evoked the specific nature of their crime. In the case of the mission of Bordeaux in 1817, for example, the prefect reported that “among the number of people that the mission converted, one noticed some revolutionaries who had participated in the worst violence of 1793 .. . they helped to resurrect the cross [in 1817] that they had once destroyed.” ”° While they had some success in integrating such participants in revolutionary excesses into their ceremonies, the police reports remind us to think about the many citizens of different towns with similar links to the
The King’s Two Bodies 103 revolutionary period who did not participate in the mission, and for whom the public dramatization of the specific divisions within their town and within their families must have caused considerable pain or at least discomfort. Most often cited by the prefects were cases in which constitutional priests continued to minister to the local population. Describing the mission in Rennes, for example, where the bishop and many
of his subordinates had taken the oath to the government during the Revolution, the prefect asked the minister of the interior to “imagine the embarrassment of the old bishop and the irritation of [the other constitutional priests who serve him] when one or two of the Missionaries of
France threw into doubt the validity of their absolutions or the marriages which they had sanctified since the Revolution.” 71 The assault on constitutional priests must have pained many in the population, particularly if one considers the number of parishioners who had received the sacraments from them which were later deemed illegitimate. But it was
their assault on biens nationaux which prefects saw as most troubling for the population. For every spectacular public reconciliation that the missionaries described, there were many more French citizens who chose neither to take advantage of the missionaries’ councils of arbitration nor to publicly repent for this particular sin. Describing the repeated attacks by missionaries on the biens nationaux in the context of the mission in Briancon in 1818, the prefect of the Hautes-Alpes echoed the concerns of many of his fellow administrators when he explained: “this subject touched upon speculations declared inviolable, but in spite of the force of the law which clearly defended [the biens nationaux], one
can easily imagine the discomfort and disquiet which such discourse excites.” 4 If identifying individual sinners and incorporating them into the expiatory rituals was a part of their project, the missionaries’ spiritual quest led them to cast their net more broadly and to implicate the entire population in the sins committed during the course of the previous decades, whether or not they had actively participated in the worst violence and sacrilege of the revolutionary years. Underscoring this particular message of the missionaries, the prefect of the Bouches-du-RhG6ne summarized their sermons in the following terms: In the majority of their discourses the missionaries, and principally the director inveighed against the partisans of the revolution, the liberals, the philosophers of the century, the nonbelievers, and the excesses of the revolutionaries, . . . but the director also made a point of pronouncing that each person by his or her Sins was complicitous in the Revolution.”
104 Politics as Theater The Abbé Fayet’s sermon, given in the context of the mission at Clermont in 1818, made the point more poignantly by stressing the collective guilt which must be acknowledged for the carnage produced during the Revolution and the Empire. Your crimes are the cause of the disaster which has afflicted France these thirty years. It is to punish you for the anarchy which devoured you that God sent you that evil genius [Napoleon], . . . I don’t wish to open a wound still raw and bloody, but without your crimes, without your impious enthusiasm for this miserable nonbeliever, would you have had to suffer the disastrous deaths of your children, sent to slaughter by this madman? . . . You are menaced with still greater ills if you do not convert yourselves in good faith.
There was nothing unusual about this general indictment or the evocation of the spiritual stakes for France of mass expiation and redemption. As Sevrin tells us, “where the crimes of the Revolution were concerned, the disorder in mores, and the necessity of doing penance, the Abbé Fayet used the language of the preachers of his era.” 4 If the population as a whole was complicit by its sins in the horrors committed during the previous thirty years, there was one sin which stood at the symbolic center of these missions, and that was the killing of the monarchs in 1793. Whenever possible, expiatory rites were con-
ducted on the 21st of January or the 16th of October, and the same message of communal sin was intoned particularly on occasions devoted to remembering and denouncing this particularly sacrilegious crime. Clearly not everyone had voted for the executions of Louis XVI and Marie Antoinette, but on the 21st of January missionaries made a
point of “dwelling on the crimes committed during the course of the Revolution, and attributing them to the mass of the nation, without explicitly naming names or specifying facts.” ” If their sermons explained their vision of sinfulness and necessary repentance, it was through their public rituals that the missionaries dramatized the meaning and the consequence of this communal expiation. Every mission culminated in the same set of communal rites: mass confessions for the sins of the Revolution, amendes honorables for the collective sins of the nation, and the erection of mission crosses. Taken together, these rites did not only constitute an effort to unmake the legacy of the eighteenth century, and especially the Revolution; rather, the missionaries’ vehement assault on the revolutionary past was merely a necessary step on the road to recreating a conception of monarchy which had not reigned in France since the seventeenth century.
The King’s Two Bodies 105 Resacralizing the King’s Two Bodies: The Eucharistic Conception of Monarchy in the Nineteenth Century Presiding at all the ceremonies of the missions was the sacred Host, given
a place of honor on the altar, whether in the church or in external processions. To add to the solemnity and mystery of occasions orchestrated around this physical embodiment of Christ, missionaries encouraged participants to arrive bearing candles and wearing little crosses on their lapels; with their moving sermons they enjoined their followers to prostrate themselves before Christ, literally to throw themselves body and soul into their spiritual exercises. The service orchestrated in La Rochelle on the 21st of January in the context of a mission in the CharenteInférieure in 1818 was typical in this regard. According to the prefect’s report: [The missionaries] had informed the population on the eve of this ceremony that no one would be able to enter the church without a candle. The catafalque [was] placed in the middle of the cathedral, at a height of more than twenty feet... . The Host was given a place of honor on this altar, and surrounded with a prodigious number of candles. ... Our bishop climbed up by means of a ladder, and gave his benediction. The Seigneur Guyon profited from this occasion to launch his condemnations to the impious and the nonbelievers who did not recognize the true God. More than 1500 women and 2.5 men were in attendance with their candles.”
Just as their exhausting daily routine was motivated by a desire to get the people of France to confess, take communion, and thereby accept the body of Christ, so were their public spectacles organized around the sacred Host, dramatizing the significance of the Eucharist, and telling and retelling the story of Christ’s mortal sacrifice for his fellow man. The processions of the missionaries were dedicated to reenacting the crucifixion, reiterating the eucharistic narrative at the center of Catholicism. In Provence, missionaries cast themselves as Christlike victims, and led processions in bare feet, with ropes around their necks, to the site where the calvary would be erected, and where “their” crucifixion would be symbolically enacted.”” Those carrying the cross were likewise
enjoined to walk without shoes through the rocky streets and, as they bloodied their own feet, reenact in a small way the suffering of Christ, their savior. None of this was particularly unusual, however; this was standard fare for Corpus Christi festivities, long celebrated in France. What was new, and what gave the spectacles of the missionaries political significance, was that the missionaries tied this ancient narrative of
106 Politics as Theater Christ’s mortal sacrifice to that of Louis XVI and Marie Antoinette. The
following account of the end of an expiatory ceremony in Brittany, where the practice was not to parade a calvary through the town but to affix Christ to the cross at the end of the procession, evokes the transposition of the eucharistic narrative to the events of the Revolution. When a sailor was invited to attach the representation of Christ to the cross, he refused, saying “that he had already crucified enough people during the Terror.” If the missionaries retold this story in their description of this particular mission, it was because it perfectly expressed the central point of such ceremonies, namely that to achieve salvation the population, as individuals and as a community, had to take responsibility for the violence of the Revolution, particularly for the “crucifixion” of the innocent Louis XVI and Marie Antoinette.”® At the symbolic center of their expiatory eucharistic spectacles were the bodies of the king and queen executed during the course of the Revolution. The message, as we saw in Marseilles, was always the same: the sacrifice of the mortal bodies of Louis XVI and Marie Antoinette was to be understood as analogous to the sacrifice of Jesus. Like the body of Christ, the bodies of the dead king and queen were celebrated throughout France in a continual eucharistic festival, and the ultimate meaning
of this festival was clear. The crosses planted all over the kingdom, adorned with the emblems of the Bourbons, represented the reign of Christ in France, through his mortal and yet divine representative on earth, the king of France. The subjects of France, by participating in expiatory rites, by confessing for the sins committed by the nation against Louis XVI and Marie Antoinette, reconstituted the spiritual body of the church as the political body which was the nation, joined in devotion to Christ and their king. The Host, or a cross bearing a likeness of Christ, was carried through the streets by missionaries, but if their followers were themselves enacting the suffering of their savior in order to dramatize the narrative of Christ’s sacrifice, it was through streets adorned with a mélange of Christian and monarchical emblems. The streets and windows along the procession route were decorated with white flags, adorned with fleurs-de-lis and crosses. Spectators along the procession route and participants in the cortéges wore the same mixture of Bourbon and Christian emblems on their lapels, or carried white flags, candles, and little crosses in their hands. The procession route reenacted the stations of the cross, but it was the sins of the Revolution committed in a particular town which determined the course that the procession would follow, the specific sites
The King’s Two Bodies 107 where participants would stop and offer prayers. When the cross was finally erected, and the missionary gave his final sermon, he evoked not the general sins for which Christ had sacrificed himself on the cross but the specific sins by which the French brought about the mortal sacrifice of their king and queen. And as they led the tens of thousands of participants in mass confessions for these sins, the missionaries did not merely
offer prayers of repentance to God but amendes honorables for their crimes committed against their God and king. Finally, when they erected their massive calvaries on sites of revolutionary excesses, they did not use simple crucifixes but eucharistic symbols laced with the emblems of the restored monarch of France. As they raised these symbols they encouraged their auditors to join them in cries of “Long live Christ! Long live the King,” and led them in singing canticles which likewise stressed the
concurrent reconquest of France by Christ and their king: “Long live France / Long live the King (le Roi) / Always in France / the Bourbons and the Faith (la foi).” ”? The conception of monarchy dramatized in these mass spectacles, far
better attended than any commemorative festival organized by the regime in these years, was founded on the principle of divine right and based on the model of the Eucharist. Not since the seventeenth century had the people of France participated in spectacles which were designed to emphasize the sacred nature of the body of their king and the equivalence between the emblems representing Christ and the symbols of their monarchs. Not since the funerals of the Renaissance kings had the streets of France been organized around Gothic-style venerations of the effigy of the Christlike king, meant to evoke both the mortal body of the king (which does die) and his magnitus (which does not).8° While no effigies were present in the ceremonies of the missionaries, the physical sacrifices
of Louis XVI and Marie Antoinette were continually evoked—in the timing of the ceremonies (on the 21st of January), in the contents of their sermons, and in the emblems of the monarchy which adorned the streets and the eucharistic symbol of the calvary itself. Unlike the commemorations of the state which consistently avoided evoking the bodies of the king and queen, these mortal but ultimately sacred bodies were ever present in the expiatory rituals of the missionaries.*! Sevrin, in his eloquent tribute to these missionaries, takes great pains
to distinguish their august spiritual mission from any sordid, earthly “political” gambits on behalf of the Ultras or any secret society such as the Congregation; if the message in the missions was political, he argues, it was part and parcel of their spiritual quest. There is no question that
108 Politics as Theater Sevrin was right. If critics of the missionaries were quick to accuse them of representing the Ultras or secret societies, there is no reason to assume
such a connection in order to understand the nature of their missions, and especially the political agenda which apparently informed them. It is clear that the missionaries’ view of the world, inspired entirely by their religious vision, shaped their perspective on the eighteenth century, the
Revolution, as well as the future of monarchy. That they should have figured the past and future of France in terms of an expiatory narrative, that they should have reimagined and worked to reconquer France in the name of a monarch who should rule, like Christ, according to the model of the Eucharist all makes perfect sense, and certainly does not need to be understood by resorting to narratives of conspiracies and plots on behalf of radical right-wing parties. Yet the nature of the missionaries’ ceremonies, the radical counterrevolutionary agenda at the heart of their revival, and the visible support
they received as they went from town to town did create talk of such conspiracies. Their austere moral message and their assault on the revolutionary legacy combined to engender popular anticlericalism in defense of both an “older” Catholicism and the secular legacy of the eighteenth century and the Revolution. More than any of the modest ceremonies of the Restoration regime, it was the expiatory spectacles of the missionaries which shaped the battleground on which struggles over France’s future would be waged. As they traveled across France invoking the personnel, geography, and the songs, symbols, and festivals of the revolutionary period, they directly undermined the regime’s efforts to encourage oubli, and offered their critics the perfect tools to use to defend their own notion of the sacred which should govern in postrevolutionary France.
CHAPTER THREE
Competing Commemorations The Problem of Performing Monarchy
All over France civil officials responded with alarm to the missionaries and wrote to their superiors in Paris for guidance and assistance about how best to contain the disorder engendered by their national revival. Literally thousands of letters were exchanged between local civil administrators and their superiors in Paris about the critical question articulated most clearly by the mayor of Toulouse, who in 1818 asked the minister of the interior: Mustn’t one take away from the missionaries the possibility of becoming the arbiters of France’s future? Is it prudent to let a handful of men who could be misguided by a false zeal, exercise such enormous influence on the prodigious crowds which they attract in all of the cities of France which they visit? !
Few local officials put the question so baldly. In their regular correspon-
dence with their superiors in the civil administration they tended to dwell on the logistical details which would merely enable them to ensure
order in the context of visiting missions. Yet what this mass of documents makes clear is that what was at stake in the minutiae of orchestrating the religious revival at the local level was nothing less than the contentious and complicated matter of representing, or literally “staging,” monarchy in France. The missionaries posed a real problem for civil administrators during the Restoration: the potential or real disorder they occasioned put civil administrators in the awkward position of having to decide exactly how they were to handle these men of the
109
IIO Politics as Theater collar, authorized, after all, by the king himself, and leading a revival on behalf of what was now the state religion. Should these representatives of the government censor the missionaries, and rely upon the Charter, the Civil Code, and the Concordat to defend the juridical legacy of the Revolution by which the regime was legally constituted? Or should they lend their support to the missions, ensure order in their processions, and even participate in them, in spite of the fact that the missionaries’ sermons and spectacles articulated a conception of monarchy which was at odds with the one the regime apparently supported? What role should the population play in determining the fate of the missionaries? Should the local population participating in or actively organizing against the
missions also be granted the status of “arbiters of France’s future”? It was by their decisions on a host of minor questions that local officials offered their complicated responses to these fundamental issues. This chapter will carefully consider the policies that civil administrators ultimately adopted vis-a-vis the missionaries during the course of the Restoration because it allows us to appreciate the way in which the regime constituted itself at the local level, in the context of controversies which raised fundamental questions about the nature of the monarchy and the spiritual and temporal order it was supposed to defend. By con-
trasting the spectacles of the missionaries and the state, the previous chapters have broadly outlined the competing conceptions of monarchy performed all over France in this period. Now, as we turn our attention to the practical matter of governing the kingdom and, in particular, to the struggles which erupted between civil and ecclesiastical officials over the mechanics of ruling under a “Christian” versus a “secular” monarchy, we can demonstrate the degree to which a continuous public and participatory negotiation over the nature of legitimate authority defined and ultimately destroyed the regime.
The Juridical Foundations of Monarchy In legal terms, there is no question that the Catholic church benefited from the restoration of the Bourbon monarchy. The Charter itself proclaimed Catholicism to be the state religion, marking an improvement over the Concordat of 1801, which regarded Catholicism as merely “the religion of the great majority of Frenchmen.” * However, if Article 6 of the Charter granted Catholicism this status, it stood beside Article 5, which promised freedom of religion; as we shall see, this religious toler-
Performing Monarchy III ance was consistently defended by the state, and severely curtailed the privileges which could be enjoyed by the Catholic church in spite of its new and improved official status. A veritable wave of clerical legislation was passed in the first two years of the Restoration. Many of the liberal measures adopted during the Revolution, and not reversed under Napoleon, were attacked. The
law permitting divorce was removed from the Civil Code. Married priests were deprived of their pensions. While full restoration of church properties was not possible due to the financial straits of the new regime, an ordinance was passed in 1814 facilitating gifts to religious establishments. Strengthening church control over education, an ordinance of October 1814 permitted bishops to open an ecclesiastical school exempt from university control in every department. In December of the same year the government legally reaffirmed the sanctity of Sundays and relligious holidays. The ultraroyalists tried to replace the Concordat of 1801 negotiated by Napoleon with the Concordat of 1516, which would have given the church more power than it had had in 300 years. This effort failed, however, and the agreement signed in 1817 was hardly the radical document the ultraroyalists had hoped for. Some new dioceses were created, and the pope succeeded in appointing some bishops, but the basic subjugation of the church to the state and the defense of the revolutionary settlement, including the acknowledgment of biens nationaux and the validity of constitutional priests and their sacraments, were all maintained in the Concordat of 1817. In practical terms, the Concordat of 1801 held sway.
In many respects the legal framework of the Restoration disappointed those who sought to reassert the juridical foundations of Christian monarchy as against the secular monarchy consolidated over the eighteenth century. The failure to reestablish the Concordat of 1516 was one example of this, and the abortive campaign to return the responsibility for civil registers from justices of the peace to the priests was another. Unlike in the seventeenth century, when being considered a mem-
ber of the body politic required attending catechism, or attesting to birth, marriage, and death through participation in the baptismal, matrimonial, and mortuary rites of the national faith, by the late eighteenth century, civil status had been fully severed from sacramental conformity. Efforts to undo this critical shift in the first year of the Restoration were foiled when the House of Peers rejected the proposal. Religion had become a private option rather than a public obligation, and by preserving the role of the justices of the peace in maintaining the civil registers the
I12 Politics as Theater Restoration regime made clear its determination to maintain this particular secular legacy from the eighteenth century. In its willingness to control the verbal space of the kingdom on behalf of the national religion, the monarchy also showed itself to be the successor of the eighteenth-century monarchs of France rather than of their seventeenth-century counterparts. Whereas in the seventeenth century
monarchs not only censored “blasphemous” literature but also had their magistrates perform “ritual tearings and burnings of condemned books in order to avenge violations of conventional norms and purge their errors from public consciousness,” * over the eighteenth century such public expiations fell into disuse, as did censorship in the name of religion. Despite repeated efforts by the missionaries to get the king to support their campaign against mauvais livres, especially after the massive reprintings of the writings of the philosophes which began in 1817, Louis XVIII consistently cited the Charter’s freedom of the press and refused to intervene and turn the state against the publishing houses. Certainly the state orchestrated no autos-da-fé. In fact, the regime did have censorship laws which explicitly protected the Catholic church against attack; however, these were not very strictly enforced. In May of 1819 press laws were passed proscribing offenses to public morality and religion. Such famous individuals as Pierre Jean de Béranger and Paul Louis Courier were imprisoned under the law, although it was still only applied in rare cases. On the 17th and 25th of March 1822, stricter bills were introduced, providing for the suppression of any publication that “by its tendency or its spirit diminished the respect due to religion.” * While the vagueness of the law opened many newspapers to attack, it was never really enforced. In fact, in total there were only three victims of the law of 1822.° In the seventeenth century, French jurisprudence protected the sacred character of persons, places, objects, and ceremonies as well as times consecrated to God. The monarchy of the eighteenth century moved away from punishing citizens for such acts of sacrilege, although the laws on the books still made it possible for the government to act otherwise, and very occasionally it did so; in spite of some laws that the Res-
toration government passed which put it in a position to define and punish sacrilegious acts, it followed its eighteenth-century predecessors by avoiding their enforcement.® An ordinance of December 1814 reaffirmed the sanctity of Sundays and religious holidays, but there doesn’t seem to be any evidence that this law was enforced. In 1825 the regime passed a quite controversial law on sacrilege, which seemed to signal a
Performing Monarchy 113 clear return to the juridical practices of its seventeenth-century ancestors. In April of 1824, when the Sacrilege Law was initially proposed, it was withdrawn by the minister of justice on the grounds that such a metaphysical term as sacrilege had no place in secular law. Yet in January of 1825 the bill was reintroduced. Under the proposed bill, thefts committed in churches were to be punishable by hard labor for life or with solitary confinement, while profanation of the sacred vessels or the Host was to be punishable by the same sentence accorded to criminals convicted of parricide. The condemned person was to be led to execution with his feet bare and his head covered with a black cowl. Before infliction of capital punishment, his right hand was to be amputated.’ In fact, the final version of the law that was promulgated omitted reference to parricide and limited the punishment for this crime to a combination of capital punishment and an amende honorable for crimes against God and King. In practical terms the passage of the law raised the specter of religious persecution against Protestants and nonbelievers, which the monarchy had clearly renounced in the eighteenth century. Rumors im-
mediately circulated that not only violent attacks and profanations within churches but even the failure to decorate one’s home, or respectfully kneel before passing religious processions, would provoke the vengeance of this law. Although the worst fears of its critics were never actually realized, the mere fact of this law’s passage led many to conclude that the government was abruptly changing course and moving toward establishing a theocracy in France. In the words of one of its staunchest opponents in the chambers, Pierre-Paul Royer-Collard, “Not only does [the proposal] introduce into our legislation a new crime, but what is even more extraordinary, it creates a new principle of criminality, an or-
der of crimes which is, so to speak, supernatural. ... As such the law throws into question both religion and civil society, their nature, their ends, and their respective independence... governments, should they be successors to the apostles?” ® If the content of the law was sufficient to excite widespread concern and protest, the apparent turnaround of the government on this issue between 1824 and 1825 and the growing conviction (even among monarchists on the right) that its suspicious passage could only be explained by the secret machinations of the Knights of Faith led many to see this law as but the first sign of an extensive clerical plot to secretly put the reins of government in the hands of those working to resurrect the kind of theocracy described by Royer-Collard.? The Sacrilege Law, more than any other single piece of legislation passed during the Restoration, completely contradicted the consistent
114 Politics as Theater policy of the regime to differentiate sacramental conformity from citizenship, to avoid ascribing to itself the role of definer or defender of the sacred, in short, to constitute monarchy in strictly secular terms. This law, which clearly evoked the equivalence between the sacred Host and the person of the king, and which revived the ancient practice of the amende honorable, was the sole legal act of the Restoration to offer the eucharistic conception of monarchy which was common fare in the revival of the missionaries. That the profanation of the Host, which represented the body of Christ, was conceived in the early version of this law as “parricide,” and analogously as “regicide,” demonstrates the degree to which the eucharistic model of monarchy was at work in the framing of this law. In the final version of the law, attacks on the sacred Host were not automatically interpreted as attacks on the body of the king; since the law required proof that the culprit committed the act “voluntarily, publicly and by hatred and contempt for the monarchy,” it imagined the possibility of a sacrilegious act that had nothing to do with the king. Yet the apparent support by the government for a law which contained at its core a conception of monarchy that equated the king with God, and his body with the sacred Host, was sufficient to provoke widespread controversy and protest. The law was, in fact, never applied.
Its only victim, as one historian has argued, “was the regime crazy enough to accept responsibility for it.” 1° A central issue which contemporaries regarded as a sort of barome-
ter in church-state relations was the question of the biens nationaux. While émigrés were also concerned in this critical matter, the church obviously had an interest in legislation concerning this particular legacy of the Revolution, and critics of moves to offer restitution or undermine the legality of the biens nationaux often focused on its clerical dimension. In
1815 the regime passed a law that provided for the restitution of all properties which the government had acquired as biens nationaux, but which had never been “alienated” to individual citizens. It was not until 1825 that this thorny issue was resolved by a law which did not punish acquirers of biens nationaux or challenge the inviolability of property acquired in this way, but which did acknowledge the rights of those “despoiled” during the Revolution and afforded them reparations. While the milliard des émigrés provoked a broad reaction among many critics who saw this as a return to the injustices of feudalism, even this legislation clearly did not challenge the validity of the biens nationaux. In the matter of biens nationaux the regime showed itself to be the inheritor of the secular monarchs of the eighteenth century whose magistrates regu-
Performing Monarchy I15 larly enforced laws which echoed the logic of an anonymous pamphleteer of that period who declared that there was “nothing more sacred in the order of civil things than property.” 11 If in the eighteenth century the magistrates enforced this view by protecting the property of Jansenists and by ceasing to punish religious crimes like suicide with the confiscation of property, the Restoration monarchs perpetuated it in their consistent insistence upon the legality of the biens nationaux. In addition to the Sacrilege Law and the new law offering reparations
for biens nationaux, the government promulgated two other clerical laws in 1825, one giving priests more power in education and the other
recognizing the right for women (but not men) to organize in petits séminaires; taken together, this series of laws represented a high point in legislation favoring the church, and offering a conception of monarchy like that regularly proffered by the missionaries. So severe was the reaction to this clerical thrust that the government was forced to explain itself in order to assuage the widespread fears that France was becoming a theocracy, increasingly, if clandestinely, ruled by men of the collar. In May of 1826, Denis-Luc Antoine Fraysinnous, the minister of ecclesiastical affairs, gave a long speech on the religious politics of the government, emphasizing in particular the vast gap that existed between the ac-
tual state of affairs in France and the “myth created by propaganda” which led people to believe that society was increasingly controlled by priests, and in particular by Jesuits. Fraysinnous offered statistics, such as the fact that in education the Jesuits ran only 7 out of 100 seminar-
ies, and that those were but a small fraction of schools training the young, including 60 communal colleges and 800 private institutions.” The regime remained on the defensive regarding ecclesiastical matters,
as anticlericalism continued to swell throughout the kingdom until 1828, when it finally promulgated a law which represented a clear ac-
knowledgment that it had to back off on its policies supporting the church. The Ordinances of June 1828 responded in particular to fears that the priests, and especially the Jesuits, were gaining control over primary and secondary education by placing both under the strict surveillance and control of the university. The church establishment was opposed to this act, and a committee of seven bishops drew up an official letter of protest, signed by seventy prelates. Charles X had to seek the intervention of the pope (which was granted) to get the clergy to fall into
line with the regime on this matter. Thus, in terms of its legal efforts to define the relationship between church and state, the Restoration divides easily into three periods. First,
116 Politics as Theater in the years up through 1824, the regime generally supported the church,
and enabled it to recover somewhat from its weakened position, but consistently maintained the juridical foundation established over the eighteenth century and strengthened by the Revolution and especially by the Concordat of 1801. The years 1825-1826 represent a high point of clerical legislation, epitomized by the Sacrilege Law, which offered a vision of monarchy completely inconsistent with the regime’s general practice, but perfectly consonant with the vision of monarchy put forth
by the missionaries. Finally, the years 1827-1829 mark a shift away from this position, first a defensive posture and rhetorical efforts to assuage fears of theocracy, and finally the law of 1828 actually curtailing the power of the church in the domain of education. Regardless of these specific legislative thrusts and reversals, which did play a role in shaping the way people perceived this regime, the government was, in fact,
remarkably consistent in defending the secular vision of monarchy honed over the course of the eighteenth century. Its consistent efforts to retain the separation between citizenship and sacramental conformity, its intransigence as to the inviolability of the biens nationaux, its continuous reluctance to prosecute for blasphemy and sacrilege, even once these things were on the books, all demonstrate its commitment to this legacy.
The Ceremonial Foundations of Monarchy If, in spite of some spectacular exceptions, the Restoration regime proved itself to be the successor to the secular monarchy of the eighteenth century in legal terms, in ceremonial terms the conception of monarchy which defined the regime over fifteen years was far less clear.
From the beginning of the regime, Louis XVIII showed himself to be willing to reintegrate the church into the state’s public ceremonies, and to place himself at the head of the national religion by promoting and participating in religious ceremonies and rites. After 1825 the image of a resurrected Christian monarchy became much more powerful once Charles X ascended the throne. His coronation, coupled with his active participation in the expiatory services associated with the Jubilee of
1826, sent a strong message to the nation that in spite of the legal framework of the nation (also changing in alarming ways at the same moment), the monarchy was returning to its seventeenth-century Christian incarnation. The apparent contradiction between these two aspects, the legal and the ceremonial foundations of monarchy, fanned the
Performing Monarchy 117 discourse of plots and conspiracies from which the regime would suffer until its fall in 1830. On the level of the ceremonial trappings of the Restoration regime, historians are most justified in calling this period a “return to the Old Regime.” Francoise Waquet’s La Féte Royale sous la Restauration, ou
Ancien Régime retrouvé is devoted entirely to demonstrating this point.!4 Whether by looking at the personnel hired to ensure the faithful reproduction of Old Regime ceremonial, the festive calendar adopted by the restored Bourbons, the decorations designed for these events, or the way in which the church was reintegrated into the business of representing the monarchy to its subjects, Waquet repeatedly underscores the continuity between the Restoration monarchy and its predecessors of the early modern period. Considered against the backdrop of the revolutionary campaign to dechristianize France and to use secular, republican (and later imperial) festivals to remake the nation and its people, there is no doubt that the Restoration’s festival project betrays an effort to restore an older conception of the relationship between the people and its rulers, which included a return to the rhythms of a Christian calendar, punctuated by the critical personal and political events in the lives of the reigning monarchs.’ Explicitly religious celebrations comprised eight of the ten regular festivals orchestrated annually by the regime; these included funeral ceremonies for Louis XVI, Marie Antoinette (until 1825), the duc de Berry (after 1820), and Louis XVIII (after 1825)— all of which were celebrated as masses—as well as the ceremony of the Last Supper, the procession of Corpus Christi and its Octave, the procession of the Vow of Louis XIII (August 15), and the mass in honor of the Holy Ghost.'® Other annual festivals focused attention on events in the lives of the kings or other members of the royal family: these included the saint days of Louis (25 August) and later Charles (4 November), the royal entries of Louis XVIII and Charles X into Paris, and births,
marriages, and deaths within the royal family. Like their predecessors, the restored Bourbons combined an extensive ritual at court with local festivals celebrated all over the nation, in which they did not directly interact with their subjects but through which their images were disseminated and shaped. In prints, medals, and busts (which were themselves ceremonially inaugurated and then served as stand-ins for the absent monarch), in speeches by local officials, in theater performances carefully chosen for their complimentary portraits of the king, and in Te Deumis celebrated in churches, images of the distant king were presented to the people in the context of regular, local celebrations.
118 Politics as Theater Yet if we analyze more closely the range of ceremonial practices deployed to represent the monarchy during the Restoration, it becomes clear that if the regime emulated its monarchical ancestors, it was the very recent monarchs of the eighteenth century who had already turned away from many of the rites and rituals which stressed the “sacred,” “divine” nature of kingship. The whole range of rituals that were common in the reigns of the most Christian monarchs because they attested to the sacred quality of his person, or because they clearly dramatized the equation between king and kingdom, and the very Christian nature of that kingdom, were either avoided or proved very problematic for the Restoration monarchy.!” The main ceremony devoted to underscoring the sacred quality of the monarch, the coronation, was not performed for Louis XVIII. During Louis XVIII’s reign there were repeated efforts to orchestrate a coronation, but they were consistently foiled by disastrous events. The initial plan for the coronation in 1814 was put off because of Napoleon’s return in the Hundred Days. A new project for a coronation in the winter of 1818—19 was canceled because of the assassination of the duc de Berry. Again plans were drawn up for a coronation in 1823, a plan which, interestingly, tried to avoid Notre Dame with
its memory of the imperial coronation in favor of the smaller Eglise Saint-Geneviéve. But these plans were also dropped, because of the king’s infirmities. Thus Louis XVIII sat on his throne for ten years without any religious ceremony sanctifying his kingship in the ritual manner
performed regularly by his ancestors in the Old Regime. As with the consistent failure to erect expiatory statues for Louis XVI and Marie Antoinette, one can always interpret the failure to perform a coronation in terms of circumstances. But in fact this ceremonial omission fits squarely with the conception of monarchy that Louis XVIII seemed committed to supporting. Indeed, in eschewing the coronation, he followed the practice of his eighteenth-century predecessors, who had likewise placed less and less emphasis on a ritual that no longer seemed nec-
essary or appropriate for constituting monarchical authority. What is extraordinary and noteworthy, in fact, is less Louis XVIII’s failure to resurrect the practice of the coronation than Charles X’s determination to have one, with many of the trappings of his seventeenth-century predecessors. The august and spectacular ceremony performed at Reims, and celebrated simultaneously in local festivals throughout the country, represents a critical shift in the way in which the regime publicly constituted itself. While the king did acknowledge and publicly proclaim his
continued support for the Charter, and integrated new prayers and
Performing Monarchy 119 oaths into this ritual acknowledging these new aspects of monarchical authority, Charles X participated in a public anointment in which the officiating bishop referred to him as “he whom God has given us as king.” This king also practiced the ancient rite of “touching for scrofula,” further underscoring the divine origin of his person.'® In the following year, 1826, Charles X actively participated in public expiatory processions in the context of the Papal Jubilee; in so doing he cemented the message propagated by his coronation that the conception of monarchy which he believed in was more akin to that being dramatized by the missionaries than that apparently adhered to by his predecessor and brother, Louis XVIII. Dressed in purple, the color of mourning for the kings of France, Charles proceeded on foot with a candle in his hand, casting himself as one of the tens of thousands of French subjects participating in such expiatory rituals throughout the nation. But this particular spectacle gave rise to a widespread rumor that the king was in fact a bishop, secretly working to place the reins of power in the hands of the clerics. While historians have all concurred on the critical role of this particular Jubilee spectacle in the growing obsession with the clerical plot, I would argue that this way of interpreting the event only makes sense when put in the context of the religious revival which regularly orchestrated such expiatory spectacles throughout the Restoration. In the previous chapter, I spoke of the extensive participation of civil officials in the expiatory rituals of the missionaries. Actively en-
couraged by the priests, and necessary to give their ceremonies the appearance of public sanction, the regular participation of uniformed members of the National Guard, the army, and civil officials served to solidify the view that the regime seemed to be supporting a conception of monarchy and a view of the secular legacy of the eighteenth century and the Revolution which was, in fact, at odds with its laws. Many civil officials refused to participate on precisely these grounds; but more often they added their numbers to the spectacular processions of the missionaries, participating most frequently in the planting of the cross, the final expiatory ritual of the missionaries. If such participation led local populations to assume that their government was falling under the control of the priests, when Charles X himself participated in the extravagant expiatory spectacle in conjunction with the Jubilee it gave national currency to this obsession with a clerical plot. While provoking controversy from the beginning of the Restoration, it was after 1825—after the coronation, the passage of the Sacrilege Law, and the king’s participation in the Jubilee of 1826—that such fears
120 Politics as Theater precipitated a huge wave of anticlerical protest against the missionaries and the king; this groundswell of protest led the regime to become more careful about its public image and, in particular, to take steps to assuage the fears of a theocracy. Just as the public pronouncement of Frayssinous in 1826 and the June Ordinances of 1828 constituted clear efforts by the regime to quell such fears, so did the decline in national religious services between 1827 and 1829 correspond to a clear effort on the part of the regime to demonstrate that it did not support the missionaries’ conception of monarchy, but in fact was willing to defend and represent itself as the legitimate successor to the secular monarchs of the eighteenth century.” The chronology of the ceremonial foundations of the Restoration regime dovetails with the shifts noted in the discussion of its legal frame-
work. Between 1814 and 1824 a cautious secular monarchy reintegrated the church into its ceremonies, but avoided a coronation or any ceremony which clearly figured the monarch himself as sacred. The years
1825 and 1826 represent a peak in the apparent “return” of Christian monarchy of the seventeenth-century type, when the coronation and the king’s participation in the Jubilee evoked a vision of kingship perfectly consonant with that put forth by the missionaries. Between 1827 and 1829, the decline in religious ceremonies associated with the regime marks an effort to sever the public connection between the actual monarch and this more radical vision. But in the local context of a visiting mission, where public political authorities often attended the missionaries’ autos-da-fé, mass confessions for the sins of the Revolution, and processions culminating in the erection of their enormous calvaries, this chronology was less than perfectly clear. If debates over clerical laws and major national ceremonies such as the coronation and the Jubilee played a major role in shaping the public debate over the relationship between church and state in the constitution of monarchy in the Restoration, it was the protracted struggles between missionaries and civil officials at the local level which brought the issue home for the majority of French men and women. While all historians of the Restoration allude to the missions, and evoke in a general way the anticlerical sentiment they aroused, no one has ever looked closely at the complex, public negotiations precipitated by this revival, even though they offer a privileged vantage point from which to see the working out of the revolutionary settlement regarding church-state relations in this critical period.
Performing Monarchy 121 Struggles Over the Missions In many ways the following discussion of the struggles between missionaries and their supporters in the church and the Restoration regime continues the line of inquiry opened by Dale Van Kley in his studies of Jesuits and Jansenists and advanced by Jeffrey Merrick’s analysis of related controversies at the end of the Old Regime. Both authors investigated struggles over religious issues in the eighteenth century in order to demonstrate how protracted disputes over the appropriate jurisdiction of the church and the state in temporal and spiritual matters gradually eroded the foundations of Christian monarchy. In Merrick’s words, “Ju-
risdictional conflicts disrupted the collaboration between [the church and state] and the secular authorities effectively renounced any visionary attempt, as one functionary put it, ‘to make society into a monastery.’ ” 7° The analysis of the struggles between missionaries and civil officials that follows continues this discussion on the other side of the revolutionary chasm, when the religio-political foundations of monarchy were being sorted out in the wake of the cataclysmic events between 1789 and 1815. During the Restoration it was over the minutiae of organizing missions that local government officials articulated the regime’s relationship to the church. From this vantage point it is clear that far from marking a return to the Old Regime of its seventeenth-century ancestors, the Restoration regime furthered in juridical and bureaucratic terms the secularization which took place over the eighteenth century. Honing arguments, laws, and tactics which could be deployed to discipline the missionaries, the
“reactionary” Restoration clearly consolidated the secular settlement prefigured during the Revolution, expressed in the Concordat of 1801, and fully applied after the Revolution of 1830. In the eighteenth century, monarchs and their magistrates progressively saw a separation of Catholicity from citizenship as essential to social peace—unlike their seventeenth-century predecessors, who had seen sacramental conformity and obedience to the laws of the church as constitutive of the social order. Yet controversies over Jansenists and Protestants led increasingly to the view that to preserve social and political tranquility, spiritual matters had to be consigned to the private sphere; the government should not defend the church, or define the sacred, or in any way construe the citizenry in religious terms. Indeed, so far did the pendulum swing that the government increasingly saw the need to intervene in ecclesiastical matters on behalf of citizens who were
122 Politics as Theater being denied the sacraments or having land confiscated because of religious crimes. In other words, by the end of the eighteenth century, mon-
archs stopped defining the body politic in Christian terms, and they went so far as to intervene in spiritual matters in the name of the more important, and quite separate, public interest. During the Restoration the correspondence between civil and ecclesiastical officials over the mis-
sions recapitulates this essential eighteenth-century debate. On the one side, we have representatives of the state making the practical argument about the need to prohibit or carefully monitor the religious revival in the name of social order, while, on the other side, we have the missionaries and their supporters in the church trying to resuscitate the older argument that religion does not challenge but rather helps to cement social order. In their requests for guidance and assistance from their superiors in Paris, local civil officials portrayed the missionaries as a fundamental challenge to public tranquillity on many levels. Some administrators made this point merely by evoking the broad contrast between the regime’s commitment to forgetting regarding the delicate problem of the revolutionary past and the missionaries’ determination to foment passions through their emphasis on remembering. In the words of the prefect of the Hautes-Alpes, in a letter written in 1818: “This maxim of oubli and union, so eminently religious, that the government spreads to its subjects by the voice of its administrators, is nowhere the rule of these missionaries.” 24 Echoing the same point a few months later, but referring more explicitly to the pernicious consequences of the missionaries’ approach, a police report from Valence in Provence commented ruefully, “it is painful to see ministers of religion refusing to cover the past with a veil of oubli, and by design, stirring up passions with their sermons.” 72 Administrators did not, however, restrict themselves to abstract discussions of the virtues of oubli; they revealed the multiple dangers posed by the missionaries in more concrete terms. Whether by drawing attention
to the missionaries’ repeated assaults on the juridical framework of the existing monarchy, or their tendency to stir up painful memories of the White Terror, which had hardly had time to heal, or the unpopularity of their explicitly religious message, civil officials evoked the specter of dis-
order to which they, as administrators and defenders of social peace, were obliged to develop an effective response.
A commissioner of police from Dijon in the Céte d’Or explicitly raised the problem of the missionaries’ assault on the legal foundations of the regime:
Performing Monarchy 123 The missionaries could even become quite dangerous if they try to propagate principles contrary to the Charter, or to throw doubt on the inviolability of properties which we call national; principles which we know they have integrated into their sermons in many cities where they have already been.??
If their direct attacks on the laws and the Charter made them appear subversive and dangerous, the missionaries’ determination to use their expiatory ceremonies to remind the population of the horrors of the Revolution seemed to many administrators to carry a danger of its own, particularly in areas so recently torn apart by the violence of the White Terror. This, as we saw, was the case for the prefect of the Bouches-duRhone trying to preserve order in Marseilles in 1820. It was also true for the prefect of the Céte d’Or, who echoed the sentiments of the police commissioner just mentioned, and tried to block a mission from taking place the following year in Beaune. His depiction of the missionaries was more inflammatory, shaped by a language of plots and conspiracies which characterized a good deal of the criticism of the revival in these years. His fears were also more specific to the context of his department, in light of the horrors of the White Terror experienced there only four years before the missionaries were trying to come to his town. The missionaries are nothing other than very active agents of secret societies who are trying to provoke a counter-revolution by the means of persuasion and the propagation of fanaticism. That which the nobles couldn’t accomplish in 1815 and 1816, by force and by violence, the Priests and their auxiliaries want to bring to fruition with their conferences and their preaching.
Depicting his town as finally having calmed down in the wake of those terrible events, he begged for the minister of the interior’s support in preserving peace: You cannot imagine the effect which these missionaries produce on women,
and on weak spirits, and if they don’t manage to provoke a civil war in France, it’s only because the elements for it don’t exist... . We mustn’t allow them to agitate the population in this way, and it is within your power to extinguish them. This is a service which you could provide for the nation, and which will earn you our gratitude.*
The prefect of Allier, in his letters both to the minister of police and to his local prelate from the period 1818-1819, beautifully summarizes the range of threats posed by the missionaries, as well as the obligation of the civil administration to intervene in the revival in the name of social order. His correspondence reiterates the view that missionaries were to be seen as “outside the law,” as consistently setting themselves against
124 Politics as Theater the juridical foundations of monarchy set up by the regime. While it is for this reason that the prefect implies that they are stirring up discord, his letter also touches on the exclusively religious content of the missions, which could be equally problematic politically because of its unpopularity. Although this particular official stopped short of justifying police intervention in strictly spiritual matters, he expressed the kind of logic which enabled many of his colleagues in the administration to do so in other contexts. I do not pretend here, to examine to what degree it is acceptable that the law of the church finds itself continually in opposition with the laws of the state, and that preaching publicly violates that which civil laws and the edicts of our sovereign permit; I pretend even less to scrutinize questions such as deciding whether or not in the excess of their zeal some ecclesiastics don’t in-
terpret the ... evangelical ...in a manner much more extreme than what it should mean; . . . these theological questions do not fall within the jurisdiction of the civil administrator; it is sufficient that a thing be more destructive than it could be useful, and that in order to produce an uncertain success it produces real bad consequences that he should try to protect those he administers.”°
In his letter to the bishop of Clermont the prefect reiterated this final point, explaining that it justified his efforts to block a mission from taking place in one of the towns in his jurisdiction. “It is in light of this obligation that I believe it is my duty to ask you to not consent to the missionaries coming to Moulins, and to write in the same sense to His Excellence the Minister of the Interior.” 7° Again and again administrators framed their arguments for prohibiting the missions, or limiting them to the interiors of churches, or controlling their timing or their content in terms of their commitment to preserving public tranquillity. In spite of the careful wording of the prefect of Allier, which seemed to disqualify public officials from meddling in strictly “theological” matters, members of the civil administration elsewhere did try to pressure missionaries to offer the sacraments and to temper their explicitly religious message in the name of social order. The following explanation of the disorder produced by the missionaries in Arles implies the right of the administrator to step in and try to enforce religious “tolerance” and “moderation” on precisely these grounds: “Public tranquillity is again at the point of being troubled by a circumstance that one could have predicted, and that those who inspired it could have avoided with more tolerance and moderation.” 2’ Here it was a question of denying absolution and the last rites to an ex-revolutionary, and the
Performing Monarchy 125 civil administrators justified pressuring the local priest to administer the sacraments in the name of social peace. The majority of prefects, subprefects, and mayors did not go so far as to meddle in religious matters, but they did regularly intervene in the missions, and the argument was always the same: it was the job of the public administrator to ensure social peace, and if religious men were “troubling public tranquillity” then it was the civil official’s job to control them. Not surprisingly, members of the church establishment saw the situation quite differently. They consistently denied the general allegation that the missionaries were a threat to social order. They articulated the kind of argument made by the archbishop of Aix in the context of the mission at Marseilles that “far from destroying order and public tranquillity, [religion] has always contributed to the maintenance of both.” 7’ In so doing they were echoing the arguments of prelates from the Old Regime, who consistently made the case that religion played a critical role in cementing the social order, in ensuring obedience to all authority. But as was the case in the Old Regime, as controversies over religious matters began to divide the citizenry and produce social unrest, the administrators working on behalf of the regime saw controlling the churchmen as the solution to the problem. In the Restoration, in the face of civil unrest, civil officials turned their attention first and foremost to controlling the missionaries. The prelates of this period criticized this tendency of the regime to turn its might against the church and its representatives instead of the troublemakers disrupting the missions. The archbishop of Aix criticized the disciplinary measures suggested against the missionaries in Marseilles in precisely these terms, asking the regime ruled by the Most Christian King Louis XVIII why it didn’t use the full power of the state against the “small number of people who seek to interrupt the mission?” Mocking those liberal newspapers which accused the missionaries of “disturbing public tranquillity,” he asked the state to step in mot on behalf of the trouble-
makers but in defense of the sacred religion of France and its right to orchestrate elaborate outdoor ceremonies which do nothing but move and edify their participants. Refusing to cooperate with any of the prefect’s demands to enclose the ceremonies inside churches, the archbishop summarized the ironic position of the regime vis-a-vis the missionaries: “T am surprised that the French government, which sees these missionar-
ies bearing the standard of Christ in this land of infidels, wishes to ban these sacred and touching ceremonies in this very Christian realm.” 2?
If prelates used all manner of argument to turn the civil administrators against the “infernal troublemakers” creating disorder in the
126 Politics as Theater context of the missions, the representatives of the national government in Paris repeatedly adopted the suspicious stance of its prefects and encouraged them to take the measures they deemed necessary to ensure public tranquillity and peace. What this translated into in practice was not prosecutions against troublemakers on behalf of the national religion but repeated efforts to control and discipline the missionaries. Indeed the extraordinary system of surveillance and censorship put into place to control the missionaries led their main historian, Ernest Sevrin, to offer the following depiction of the Restoration regime, which departs from historians’ assumptions about the inclinations of this supposedly “reactionary” and “clerical” regime: People have been wrong to believe that the Restoration offered the missionaries protection, either officially or clandestinely, or that it made of them an instrument of its rule. Whatever might have been the personal sympathies of Louis XVIII for this revival, his ministers of the interior, and of the police always had toward the missions an attitude which was more than reserved, often distrustful, and honestly painful to the bishops. Their policies tended constantly to enclose their religious exercises in the churches, and to ban, whenever possible, the great outdoor processions; .. . Charles X, as devout as he was, and having a minister of the right, shared this same manner of seeing the missions.°
The government, as Sevrin rightly points out, certainly did not rely upon
these missionaries as an instrument of its rule; quite the contrary, because of the nature of the missionaries’ message and the widespread dis-
order their revival provoked, this “counterrevolutionary” and supposedly “clerical” regime honed tactics for disciplining and controlling the priests which, over the long term, ironically secured the secular legacy of the Revolution.
The Revolutionary Settlement in Action The bureaucratic apparatus in place between 1815 and 1830 which contended with the controversies stirred up by the missions was inherited from the Revolution: the Ministry of the Interior, with its hierarchy of prefects, subprefects, and mayors; the Ministry of Police, with its auxiliary hierarchy of commissaires de police; and the Ministry of Ecclesiastical Affairs, communicating directly with the church hierarchy. These constituted the web of civil and ecclesiastical officials who negotiated over the problem of the missions. The regime did not rely only upon the administration inherited from the revolutionary period to handle prob-
Performing Monarchy 127 lems associated with the missions; it also relied upon laws dating from this period to justify intervention in the revival. In practical terms, therefore, the negotiations over specific aspects of the missions involved putting into force the administrative and legislative apparatus for defining the relationship between church and state set up during the Revolution and consolidated by the Concordat of 1801. There was no clear national policy on the missions proclaimed by the government as of 1815 and carried out consistently over the course of the Restoration. Local officials often clamored for a uniform policy that they could follow, as illustrated by the following letter from the prefect of Allier: It is greatly desired that there be adopted with regard to the missionaries a precise and uniform set of rules which, while combining prudent and conciliatory measures would allow us to prevent tumult and scandal, and also the inconveniences which arise from the exalted and virulent preaching among the inhabitants and also the disagreement and misinformation among the authorities.*!
No such national policy was ever issued. Rather, the national Ministries of the Interior and Police (eventually combined) generally left it up to local officials to assess the situation within their jurisdiction and determine how to act vis-a-vis the missionaries. In the words of a “Note” from 1829, summarizing the measures taken over the course of the regime, “The government has never given any general instructions on these issues, and we have almost always left it up to local authorities to determine what measures needed to be taken to maintain good order during the course of the religious exercises which were in question.” °*? Yet through their continual correspondence with local officials, the national government did, in fact, arm administrators with a uniform set of laws and practices which they could and did use in contending with the missionaries. The letters between local officials and their ministers in Paris reveal an army of bureaucrats trying to ascertain precisely what laws from past decades should be applied as they dealt with the problems posed by visiting missionaries. What power did they actually have to police the missionaries, and on the basis of which laws could they justify their intervention? Were laws dating from the revolutionary period still valid? In other words, the questions of local officials and the responses of their superiors dramatize in very practical terms the complexity of negotiating the relationship between church and state in this postrevolutionary pe-
128 Politics as Theater riod. The prefect of Allier, for example, requested advice concerning the applicability of Articles 45 and 49 of the Convention of 29 messidor year 9, which was part of the law of 18 germinal year 10. These two articles gave administrators limited rights to restrict religious ceremonies to the interior of churches, either in the case of a large Protestant population or where civil unrest was a possibility.2? The prefect of the Seine-andMarne addressed the minister of police in the following year regarding the possibility of applying Articles 13 and 14 of the law of 7 vendemiaire year 4, which banned all religious exercises outside of churches.34 While
the minister only responded directly in the latter case, explaining that “the law of Vendemiaire year 4 was obviously not in harmony with our present legislation,” he argued that the principle implicit in (both) laws, that civil officials had the right to police religious ceremonies and restrict
them to the interiors of churches in the name of social order, was certainly inherent in the first article of the Concordat, which could and should be applied vis-a-vis the missionaries. This important article read, “The Catholic religion will be liberally exercised in France. Its cult will be public, conforming to the rules which the Police and the government will deem necessary in order to maintain public tranquillity.” 3° Combined with the ordinance by which the missions were authorized by the
king in 1816, which required the local bishop’s approval, this article from the Concordat gave the local prefect and his subordinates the right to initiate negotiations as to whether a mission should take place at all, and if it did, to determine what measures were necessary to ensure social
peace throughout its duration. If this article generally established the principle that civil administrators had jurisdiction over the Catholic church and its public manifestations, other laws suggested by national officials in Paris justified more rigorous and specific forms of police action which could be deployed against the missionaries. To contend with the problem of the content of their sermons, and in particular the missionaries’ explicit attacks on the Charter, the biens nationaux, and the practice of civil marriage, Parisian officials repeatedly invoked three different laws. Article 201 of the Penal Code threatened with three months to two years of imprisonment “any Minister of Religion who speaks publicly against the government or a law of the government, or any act of public authority.” 3° Other correspondence cited
the law of 9 November 1811, article 8, as, for example, a letter from the prefect of the Hautes-Alpes to the minister of the police from 1818 which repeated the advice he had offered to the subprefect of Briangon
Performing Monarchy 129 regarding priests who had spoken against the biens nationaux: “there is no other measure to take but to attest, by a procés verbal, the infraction defined by the law of 9 November 1811, article 8, and to denounce the perpetrator to the judicial authorities.” +” Finally, the law on sedition passed in 1815, which was designed to prevent Bonapartists and republicans from speaking out against the monarchy, was broad enough to be relevant to the counterrevolutionary excesses of the missionaries. While the major part of this law alludes to attacks on or menaces against the person or authority of the king, and to the public use of symbols and signs other than that of the reigning monarchy, article 5 of this law also explicitly exposed to prosecution “those whose speeches, given in public places, .. . tend to excite disobedience to the King and to the Constitutional Charter.” Clearly this article was of relevance to the missionar-
ies and their sermons, as was article 8, which declared “guilty those seditious acts of people who spread or accredit rumors relating either to the inviolability of properties that one calls national, or to the supposed reestablishment of the dime or feudal rights.” 3 These different laws empowered civil officials to use a wide range of disciplinary tactics against the missionaries, including advance negotiations with prelates over the content of sermons and ceremonies, the placement of secret agents in churches to listen for infractions, forced departures of missionaries who violated these laws, and even the prosecution of offenders. The final law which came up repeatedly in the correspondence between civil officials regarding the missions was the law of 24 messidor year 12, which empowered state officials to refuse to participate in any public ceremony not explicitly orchestrated by the regime. Keenly aware of the need to differentiate the civil administration from the messages propagated in the context of the missions’ expiatory spectacles (particularly on the 21st of January), the government again offered local officials a legal means to do so. As with the article from the Concordat and the laws on sedition, local officials varied in the zeal with which they applied this particular law. In 1817, the local official acting in the absence of the prefect of the Dr6me wrote to the minister of police to applaud
the decision of a mayor in his jurisdiction not to allow the National Guard to participate in the erection of the mission cross. A few years later in the same department, the prefect condemned a different mayor for adopting the opposite course and allowing public authorities to par-
ticipate in the mission. In the latter context he specifically cited the mayor’s decision as an infraction of the law of 24 messidor year 12.°°
130 Politics as Theater As they were informed of various measures which could be used to ensure order in the context of the missions, a certain degree of uniformity
was achieved, at least in the options clearly available to local administrators. One enterprising prefect tried to turn the successful handling of the mission within his jurisdiction into a sort of model to be reproduced all over the country. The prefect of the Loire-Inférieure wrote to the minister of the interior in May of 1827, lauding the measures adopted by his subordinates and recommending the following list of tactics to be adopted elsewhere to ensure the tranquillity which reigned during the mission in his town of Nantes. It would be useful to prescribe [in concert with the ecclesiastical authorities where it concerns them]:
1. That in the interior of churches, and during all exercises, the two sexes should be separated by a barrier, and that everyone should remain seated; 2. That there shall be constantly, in every church, during the exercises, a commissaire de police with two other gendarmes at the disposition of the curé or head of the mission; 3. That all of the sermons given in public, or in meeting places, and especially in outdoor ceremonies, be communicated in advance to the municipal authorities charged with the responsibility of ensuring order; 4. That the missionaries be invited to abstain from appealing directly to any official corps or the national guard or any other, without having gotten in advance, the consent of competent authorities; they should be invited, as well, to abstain from naming in their sermons, individuals accused of reprehensible acts, leaving to magistrates alone the job of exercising calm and impartial judgments as they pursue legal repression;
5. Finally, that the local authorities severely execute laws regarding the profession of bookselling, especially regarding colporteurs [peddlers of religious books] operating without official permission.*°
In his response the minister of the interior thanked the prefect of the Loire-Inférieure for his initiative and his suggestions, and promised to send them on to the minister of ecclesiastical affairs along with a letter recommending that his precautions be adopted more generally.*! Although the minister of ecclesiastical affairs replied to his colleague that “we have every hope that the suggestions of M. the Prefect will be use-
fully applied,” there is no evidence that this set of precautions was adopted in a general way.” Rather, local civil administrators seemed to pick and choose among the various tactics at their disposal, based on the battery of laws made known to them in their personal correspondence with their superiors in Paris.
Performing Monarchy 131 Everywhere the missionaries went they were held to the requirement
of the Ordinance of 1816 that the residing bishop actually requested the mission. Critics of the missionaries quickly seized the initiative to block a mission if there was any evidence that the local bishop had not approved their arrival, and correspondence between the prefects and the ministers demonstrates their willingness to block a revival on these grounds.*? Once it was clear that the requirement of a bishop’s official invitation had been met, it was up to local civil administrators to determine (on the basis of Article 1 of the Concordat) what “rules the police
and the government will deem necessary in order to maintain public tranquillity.” At the very least, civil administrators required that they be informed of all that the missionaries planned to do so that appropriate security measures could be taken. But the demands of security often led to quite severe measures against the missionaries: civil officials tried to block missions entirely, control their timing, or restrict their preaching to the interiors of churches. The concern for public tranquillity justified censoring the content of sermons, placing police spies in churches, and even chasing missionaries from town in the case of infractions. Prefects, subprefects, and mayors tried to determine the placement of mission crosses to ensure order in the processions in which they would be erected and to allow for surveillance after the missions, when they expected the cross to be the site of public congregations and prayers. In every case the precise measures adopted by local officials depended on popular opinion regarding the missionaries and the nature and seriousness of protests against them; but they also depended on the personnel within the local church establishment and the civil administration, as well as the composition of the missionaries themselves, since some were more or less popular than others. Also important was the religious and political history of the local site of the mission. For instance, the presence of a large Protestant population (as around Nimes), or the recent history of struggles during the White Terror (as we saw in Marseilles), or the presence of a large, practicing Catholic population (as in Brittany) all determined the behavior of the missionaries and the civil authorities trying to preserve order in the context of the religious revival. Whatever the specific measures ultimately adopted on the basis of all these complex considerations, it is clear that from the beginning to the end of the Restoration civil officials did regard the missions with distrust and sought consistently to control them. The laws and the administrative procedures to be relied upon to this end were identified and honed among the civil officials governing the realm in these years. However
132 Politics as Theater clear this was to those working within the civil administration, to the missionaries and members of the church establishment, and to historians reading their correspondence, for the people witnessing the missions a more complex message was transmitted. For in practice the missionaries more often than not evaded the efforts of civil administrators. They avoided informing local authorities of their plans, in spite of the official requirement that they do so; they flouted the efforts to censor the content of their sermons, or to prevent outdoor ceremonies, often with the vocal support of local prelates.** If the missionaries’ intransigence prevented the civil officials from prevailing in the local orchestration of the
revival, more practical, material problems also stood in the local administrator’s way. The slowness of communication, for example, often meant that clear instructions from Paris to ban a mission or to chase missionaries from town were simply not received until the missionaries were safely on to their next destination. Thus, even in cases where the civil administrators responded to anticlerical protests by policing the revival, the missionaries were able to orchestrate their ceremonies as they saw fit. Whatever the popular response to the missionaries, whatever the mea-
sures ultimately adopted by local administrators, and whatever the form that local missions ultimately assumed, it is clear that struggles over the details of the revival as it was performed in the local context provided the focus of a very public, nationwide negotiation over the capital political issues of the Restoration. Who should be the arbiters of France’s future? The missionaries? Local officials armed with a bureaucracy and set of
laws dating from the revolutionary period? Supporters or protesters organizing for or against the missions? Who was actually in power in France? The king, ruling through his local administrators on the basis of the Charter, or the priests, eminently capable of imposing their own vision of France in spite of the disciplinary efforts of local officials? While no clear, long-term resolutions to these issues emerged in the local contexts in which they were negotiated, the struggles over the missions at this level gave rise to certain practices and ways of seeing which would ultimately set the stage for such a resolution at the national level.
Negotiating the Staging of Monarchy Whenever civil officials sought to intervene in the public spectacles of the missionaries it was in response to local protests. Only rarely did lo-
Performing Monarchy 133 cal officials initiate negotiations with missionaries about the content and
the staging of their revival without local provocation. Even in these cases, their efforts were usually based on the knowledge of disorder provoked by missionaries elsewhere and were therefore designed to prevent such eruptions within the area under their jurisdiction.*> The point to
underscore here is the essential role of the local population (or like populations elsewhere) in the negotiation over the missions. The full range of anticlerical practices deployed against the missionaries will be considered separately, in chapter 5; however, it will be clear within the discussion in the pages that follow that the “negotiation” which I am evoking here was not merely between the representatives of the church and of the state, but explicitly involved local populations who clearly demonstrated support for or opposition to the missionaries. A wide range of consequences resulted from this public negotiation over the missionaries. In some cases the anticlerical protesters prevailed in no uncertain terms: missions were banned, prevented entirely as a result of anticlerical demonstrations. But in other cases the local administration clearly exerted the law on behalf of the missionaries, even threatening to apply the full vengeance of the newly available Sacrilege Law. The vast majority of cases which will be considered fall between these two extremes. In the ultimate measures adopted at the local level, the majority of civil officials showed themselves willing neither to embrace the expiatory counterrevolutionary agenda of the missionaries nor to pursue these priests to the full extent of the law. As a result, the vision of monarchy performed for the vast majority of French citizens in this period was contradictory, and this, as we shall see, was ultimately fatal for the regime. Ernest Sevrin beautifully evokes the problematic nature of this contradictory, middle ground in this period: “Let us not forget... the double aspect of the revolutionary crisis for the men of this period: symbol of impiety and anarchy for some, of liberty and justice for others, the juste milieu was difficult, and easily suspect. This is the drama
of the Restoration; it is also, to a small extent, the drama of the missions.” *¢ It is not only “to a small extent” the drama of the missions, for in the majority of cases it was precisely the juste milieu that was drama-
tized in the missions which most French men and women witnessed. This was suspicious, and played a central role in fanning the discourse of plots and conspiracies which mobilized the population to defeat the regime by 1830.
134 Politics as Theater Brest, 1819: Chasing the Jesuits in the Name of the General Will In the fall of 1819 the city of Brest became the scene of a public negotiation regarding the missionaries in which the anticlerical protesters defending the secular principles of the Charter clearly won the day. Missionaries already orchestrating revivals in towns nearby, and arriving to
begin preaching in the town of Brest, were finally sent away by the bishop of Quimper and the prefect of Finistére in response to extensive and well-organized protests. A wide range of tactics were deployed by the anticlerical protesters in Brest, tactics that would become common in struggles against missionaries throughout France during the Restoration. Songs and caricatures mocking the missionaries circulated in the early days of October, setting the stage for public mass demonstrations against the missionaries once they arrived at the end of the month. Between the 26th and 28th of October two to three thousand citizens of Brest assembled and orchestrated repeated charivaris outside the bishop of Quimper’s residence, screaming, “No mission! Down with the missionaries! No perturbation of the peace of families! Our own pastors suffice!” to the noise of “bells, whistles, clarinets, flutes, and voices.” 4” Simultaneously, hundreds of péres de familles joined the meeting of the municipal council to express their opposition to the arrival of the missionaries in Brest. Appointing a deputation of fourteen citizens (including the mayor, encouraged to join the crowd by a special charivari addressed to him the previous night) to express their opposition formally
to the bishop, they also drew up a petition against the missionaries which was signed by at least 186 men participating in the meeting.*® On
the night of October 28th there was a well-attended command performance of Tartuffe. At the end of these three days of agitation, the bishop conceded to the local population, and the missionaries were chased from the town of Brest. For weeks after this successful opposition to the missionaries, pamphlets circulated in the town of Brest publicizing the triumphant events of October and even making public some of the docu-
ments written by the bishop, the municipal council, and the local and national police officials as they tried to make decisions regarding the mission of 1819. In this way the case of Brest is of peculiar interest, because the “negotiations” with officials in Paris, between civil and ecclesiastical officials within Brest, and between the organized opposition and these officials were all “public” to an exceptional degree.
Performing Monarchy 135 From the very beginning, the prefect of Finistére showed himself to be suspicious of the missionaries and deeply concerned about the potential dangers of their planned revival in Brest. However, initially he did nothing to block the mission since he believed he had no legal basis for doing so as a result of the law protecting freedom of religion.*? By October the prefect’s fears were reconfirmed by reports from his subprefect that songs and caricatures were circulating against the missionaries. He forwarded two songs to the minister of the interior, both of which derided the spiritual goals of the missionaries and encouraged the people of Brest to defend themselves against priests who seek to create divisions within their families, who attack the beloved writings of Voltaire and Rousseau, and
who subvert the very laws of the realm. These songs depicted the missionaries as the representatives of the devil, organizing ceremonies in churches where “one sees not a single family united / The wife, here, declares war on her husband; / she is then beaten up by her spouse. .. . The Devil laughs, hell rejoices.” It is for such “miracles” that the missionaries work; but they also extend their efforts against certain rights: “For a long time such a hope devours them.” “These priests are only severe,” contin-
ues the song, “against the acquirers [of biens nationaux], their wives, daughters, and sisters.” “Such is the spirit of the men who are sent to you, the people of Brest; a Monseigneur, who sees nothing to fear, guides toward you these devils incarnate.” To such threats the authors of the song
respond, “but we have our Charter, our laws... ”°° The obvious threat implicit in such songs, the efforts to garner opposition as the “Monseigneur” guided the missionaries toward Brest, led the prefect to go and see the bishop to prevail upon him to abandon his plans to have a mission. The bishop of Quimper, as the prefect explained in a letter from the 8th of October, refused to concede to this demand and offered the following, rather typical defense of the mission. The Bishop came to see me yesterday to announce the fact that his decision
was irrevocably taken, and that the mission would take place; that after scrupulously examining the objects which I presented, he believed that the dangers about which I was concerned would be by far compensated by the advantages which religion always offered; if these dangers menaced him or his clergy, that they knew how to suffer when religion commanded them to do so; that the priests, preaching peace and union, couldn’t be a source of division and of quarrels; that after having promised for so long a mission to the inhabitants of Brest it would be cowardice to cede to fears of outrage; and finally, that he was waiting to receive from the Minister either orders to ban the mission, or at least, his thoughts on the matter, but that he would never
136 Politics as Theater cede, and the will of the king himself would not lead him to yield to my request.°!
In light of the bishop’s refusal to ban the mission, the prefect tried to imagine other measures he could adopt, and in this letter expressed his intention to order the military leaders in his town to prohibit their men from participating in the exercises of the mission. The arrival of the missionaries quickly placed the leading administrator of Brest in a defensive posture. Charivaris outside the bishop’s residence on the nights of October 26 and 27, and the meeting and delegation of the municipal council and the péres de familles of his town, confronted the prefect with a city that had erupted into full-fledged revolt against the missionaries. Suddenly the minister of the interior, initially supporting the prefect’s efforts to ban the missionaries, began to send letters criticizing local officials for having yielded to local troublemakers and demanding that the prefect seek to prosecute the principal organizers of the disorder in Brest.°* The prefect consistently defended the actions of the protesters as well as the leniency which his subordinates in the local administration adopted toward them. In his descriptions of the charivaris, the prefect stressed the fact that “in the middle of this large crowd,” comprised primarily of respectable people, “not one seditious cry was emitted”; that in spite of the numerous assemblage, the people committed “neither excess nor violence,” but in fact “maintained a kind of order, or measure within their disorder”; and that, in fact, “the name of the king himself was constantly invoked, making it impossible to treat this as a seditious population.” His narrative of the
events presents a carefully organized population, doing the minimum necessary to express its views within the bounds of acceptable, legal practice. While it is true that the people ignored efforts by the subprefect and other police officials to disperse them, and in that sense directly
disobeyed the local authorities, after each charivari they did disband peacefully, and between these “organized disorders,” the missionaries and the bishop “appeared alone, and on foot in the streets, and were never once insulted.” *? If the prefect was disinclined to prosecute the in-
habitants of Brest on the basis of the reasonable and limited nature of their disturbance, he also stressed to the minister of the interior the impossibility of identifying leaders in a crowd which reached 2,000 to 3,000 members, as well as the undesirability of pursuing citizens who were clearly the leading members of the community. The minister of the
interior was also distressed by the illegal and inappropriate use of the
Performing Monarchy 137 municipal council in this context, which had been turned into a directly democratic instrument, expressing the voice of the entire population of the town.** Again, the prefect disagreed, stressing the orderly and legal
manner in which the péres de familles proceeded, getting the mayor to accompany their deputation to the bishop, and accomplishing, by peaceful and organized measures, that of which he himself had been unsuccessful, namely convincing the prelate to cancel the mission.°> The prefect was not, however, insensitive to the real security problems posed by the example of his population’s behavior. As he said, “Without doubt
a dangerous example has been given; there is reason to fear that this manner of enforcing the general will will find imitators, and may be employed in more difficult circumstances.” But within the area under his jurisdiction he was satisfied that the members of his administration had reason to “congratulate [them]selves that more guilty disorders did not follow, and that the only result was the abandonment of a project which was imprudent from the outset.” *° The prefect changed his attitude somewhat in the months following
the events of October, when two pamphlets circulating in his town sought to capitalize on the victory of anticlericalism in Brest, and to offer both the population and the administration as models to be emulated in other struggles against missionaries throughout France. “Three Days of a Mission in Brest,” the more inflammatory of the two pamphlets, contained a twenty-five-page account of the events in Brest, inviting its readers to “Let the energetic and sage conduct of the people of Brest serve as an example to all the cities where these men preach intolerance and seek to re-ignite hatreds which had been extinguished, and carry the standard of fanaticism and discord!”*” Underscoring the liberal principles on which the opposition was organized, the pamphlet (in terms remarkably similar to those used by the prefect) applauds the tactics employed by the people of Brest, both their “orderly” charivaris and their use of the municipal council to organize an official deputation to the bishop of Quimper. The author also publicized the language and terms evoked in the songs and seditious writings circulating during the incident in Brest, in particular the attacks on the priests for their immorality and hypocrisy and their tendency to employ profane tunes and all manner of stagecraft in their apparently “pious” spectacles. The following excerpt beautifully illustrates this way of presenting the missionaries: [The precipitous departure of the Jesuits] is surely a great calamity to those who wanted to benefit from their grace, and enjoy the ecstasy of remarrying;
138 Politics as Theater there is especially displeasure among those young virtuosos to whom one had proposed the singing of the Mission canticles to Vaudeville tunes. But it is also a victory for those peaceable people who like neither the scandal which one excites at the expense of religion, nor the exercises of piety which produce nothing but bigotry and ridicule.*®
The author also emphasized in this regard the performance of Tartuffe
demanded by the population as soon as the missionaries arrived in town, and which attracted a great number of spectators (principally the women of the town) when it was performed.°? Interestingly, the prefect alluded to this performance of Tartuffe only once in his extensive correspondence with the minister of the interior, acknowledging that in permitting this performance the mayor was perhaps unwise. While the publicity this pamphlet gave to these events, to a certain way of seeing the missionaries, and to the tactics which could be employed against them in other contexts lent it some importance in the eyes of the authorities, it was its last few pages that were especially worrisome. In these pages the author reproduced four official documents narrating the “Three Days of a Mission in Brest:” 1) a letter from the bishop of Quimper to the mayor of Brest; 2) the account of the deliberations of the municipal council; 3) a telegraphic inquiry from the minister of the interior to the subprefect of Brest; and 4) a response by four police commissioners to the minister’s telegraph. Interspersed with editorial comments, this reproduction of the actual correspondence by which local officials worked out their views and policies regarding the struggles over the mission in Brest rendered this official negotiation over the missions public in a way truly exceptional for this period. The first letter, from the bishop to the mayor, in which the prelate explained his decision to ban the mission, along with his disappointment with the local government for having to do so, offered the author of this pamphlet an opportunity to editorialize about the laws of the realm and the precise role which they should play in matters concerning religion. The bishop of Quimper’s letter opens with the following explanation for his decision to disband the mission: After the assurance which you have given me... that it would be impossible for you to maintain public tranquillity if the mission were to take place; according to the wishes of a certain number of péres de familles and notable citizens of Brest meeting at the city hall, who shared the same concern about the agitation which a mission would provoke, I thought it necessary to suspend the mission.°!
Performing Monarchy 139 Editorializing with footnotes, the author mocks both the prelate’s presentation of the opposition in Brest and the language used to describe his decision to “suspend” the mission. To the depiction of those meeting in the city hall as merely “a certain number” of péres de familles and city notables, the author retorts: “This certain number was composed of a thousand and some péres de familles, all of whom signed the Declaration edited and deposed at the city hall.” °* To the representation of the bishop’s decision to “suspend” the mission the author replied, “This suspension is, without a doubt indefinite! There remains a bit of prideful resistance in these phrases.” ©? The following section of the bishop’s letter, which clearly expresses his regret “to see the religion of the state unable to enjoy, in Brest, the freedom of religion guaranteed by the
Charter to all religions,” provoked a response which clearly articulated the legal principle at issue in the struggles with the missionaries in Brest. In a lengthy footnote to this point in the bishop’s letter the author replies: This letter, in general, is not without skill, but this last phrase is a gaucherie. How can the religion of the state be seen not to enjoy the freedom guaranteed in the Charter because we don’t want to receive a troop of priests without vows, missionaries without a mission? The religion of the state, that some forty priests regularly exercise in six different churches, is not liberally prac-
ticed in Brest? Must we accept that for the freedom of religion to be acknowledged that only the Apostolic and Roman religion invade all of France, combating all other dogmas, destroying all other religions? No. The freedom of religious opinion can exist only when we put the brakes on this false proselytism, which we would never tolerate among Jews and Protestants.
Republishing and responding to the telegraphic order in which the minister of the interior asked local authorities to justify their decision not to pursue “the authors of this disorder,” the “Three Days of a Mission in Brest” offered the following depiction of events of late October which at once derides the term disorder and defends the organized and orderly aspect of the opposition as well as the absolute right of the population to protest. The word “disorder” which appears in this communication is improper if it signifies excess, troubles. There were considerable assemblies, but without disorder. . . . Supposing that we did commit disorders, it would be very difficult for His Excellency, without doubt, to identify the guilty parties, to punish those who were the authors. The last public gathering brought together 3,000 individuals who joined in crying: “Down with the Mission!” If this is a crime, there were 3,000 perpetrators; but if one searches for the
140 Politics as Theater instigator of these noisy, but not dangerous reunions, then one has to convict public opinion; and we know that today it is impolitic to punish or outrage public opinion.®©
As if to prove the justness of the opposition’s stance, the pamphlet offers as its final document the report by which the local commissaires de police responded to the minister of the interior’s telegraph, a report which clearly defended the population’s actions. Permit us .... to present to you, that from the first day we decided not to use the armed force at our disposal, that we couldn’t arrest anyone in flagrant délit, that the considerable gathering (of more than 2,000 people) took place at night, making it impossible for us to determine the principal instigators of the assemblage, and that later research proved to us that there were no leaders, but that this represented the general will pronouncing itself against the missionaries, a will which expressed itself a second time, as much by the actions of the Municipal Council and the notables of this city who met with the bishop, as by the numerous signatures attached to the minutes of the deliberation of the Council from the 26th of October, and that in these disorders, both persons and property were respected.®°
The author of the pamphlet concludes his presentation of the “Three Days of a Mission in Brest” by interpreting the sagacious response of local officials as evidence that, like the citizens of their city, they believed in and were willing to defend the rights inscribed in the Charter. I repeat then, that all of our rights were respected; at the very moment when one tried to violate our rights by forcing us to receive, in spite of the will of 30,000 inhabitants, one of these missions that the Charter does not impose upon us, that it cannot impose without ceasing to be a Charter.°’
In his correspondence with the minister of the interior between November 1819 and January 1820 the prefect expressed his frustration with this particular pamphlet as well as with a second (“To the Inhabitants of Brittany”) which clearly “seeks to provoke popular resistance” to authority. He criticized those members of the administration who made the reproduced documents available to the author of the first pamphlet. These were the mayor, who in “weakness” turned over the letter from the bishop and the deliberations of the municipal council, and one of the commissaires de police, whose “indiscretion” led him to offer the telegraph from the minister of police as well as the report of the commissaires which served as a response.®* Mostly the correspondence from
December and January illustrates the frustration of this leading admin-
istrator who could apparently do nothing to stem the tide of protest
Performing Monarchy L41 which he feared would spread beyond his department, emboldening other opponents of missions elsewhere to mimic the tactics of the people of Brest. His successive efforts to prosecute the authors and publishers
of these pamphlets failed, in spite of his plan to pack the jury in the case of Corbiére’s pamphlet with “men recommendable by their morality.” In fact, the ultimate acquittal of Corbiére for his “Three Days of a Mission in Brest” offered an occasion for eighty local “ultraliberals” to honor the author with a banquet.°? The case of Brest in 1819 is truly exceptional because of the absolute success of the anticlerical protesters and the extraordinary publicity afforded the public negotiations between civil and ecclesiastical officials, thanks to the pamphlet of Mr. Corbiére; but in many ways the events of Brest were quite typical. The tactics employed against the missionaries in this context—the songs, caricatures, charivaris, meetings and deputations of leading citizens, pamphlets publicizing events, a command performance of Tartuffe—would become standard fare in confrontations with missionaries all over France. The local administration’s willingness to act on behalf of the citizens of Brest would also be imitated elsewhere. The local bishop’s depiction of the government and his statement of its obligation to defend the state religion against the outrages of its opponents were also echoed in letters from prelates elsewhere in the context of their own struggles with local officials. Finally, the way of seeing the missionaries, popularized by the songs and pamphlets in this incident, and the way of figuring the struggle between missionaries and the people as a battle over the rights accorded in the Charter, defended by the king himself—these too would be reproduced throughout the nation over the fifteen years of the Restoration. But in other contexts, where the
local administration did not favor the protesters but instead used the force of the law against them, or transmitted a more ambiguous message, the denouement would be quite different.
Limoges, 1828: The State in Defense of the Missionaries The case of Limoges in 1828 is most noteworthy for the severity of the local civil administration vis-a-vis the local opponents of the visiting missionaries. Unlike the civil administrators in Brest, the mayor of Limoges coordinated his actions with the prefect and leading military authorities so as to use the full force of the state against the troublemakers seeking to undermine the tranquillity of the mission in his town. In spite of the repressive efforts of the civil administration, the protesters against
142 Politics as Theater the missions deployed a steady stream of tactics against the missionaries, both before they arrived and especially in order to disrupt and undermine the mission once it was under way. The mere announcement of the coming mission in Limoges inspired critics of the missionaries to cover many public edifices with messages intended to garner opposition to their arrival. Handwritten inscriptions first appeared on the 31st of January “on the door of the residence of the Premier President, on the door of the post office, and other sites most frequented in public.” 7° Writing on February 4th to the minister of the interior, the prefect of the Haute-Vienne explained that since the arrival of the missionaries “the practice of placarding the city with anti-missionary inscriptions had multiplied, covering the doors and walls of many houses situated on the marketplace with the words, ‘Down with the missionaries, down with the Jesuits.’” 71 Because they were apparently scribbled under the obscurity of darkness, the authorities were unable to identify the authors of these anticlerical placards. After the 16th of March, when the revival actually began in the city of Limoges, opponents of the missions tried to disrupt religious services by throwing firecrackers and stink bombs inside the churches. The fact that the services were usually held at night, when the interiors of the churches remained dark, made it impossible, once again, for the authorities to apprehend the authors of these acts. In response to these disruptions the mayor of Limoges went on the offensive against those who were opposed to the mission, first, by posting placards all over town clearly articulating the local administration’s determination to support the mission, and second, by conceding to his local bishop’s request that he deploy military force to defend the religious services and outdoor ceremonies of the mission. The placard posted by the mayor of Limoges is worth citing in full because it beautifully articulates the message propagated here and in other cities in France where the local administration showed itself willing to defend the missionaries in the name of the Charter, and even the newly available Sacrilege Law. The Mayor of Limoges to his fellow citizens, Inhabitants of the City of Limoges!
The ministers of the religion of the state have come among you to preach the truths of the Gospel, to help your pastors in their ministry. The believers who have come together to hear them have the right to the protection of our laws. However, some young thoughtless creatures, enthusiasts, no doubt, of liberty, but who understand it badly since they want to attack the
Performing Monarchy 143 liberty of their fellow citizens, have permitted themselves to spread disgusting odors and act disruptively in churches where no one had forced them to present themselves.
This conduct injures the legal order; it is anti-social, anti-liberal because it tends to undermine the most respectable of all our liberties, that of conscience. It is anti-French because it principally insults a feeble sex which merits everywhere our respect and protection. We hope that these disorders will not be reproduced in a city whose inhabitants have always distinguished themselves by the peacefulness of their habits and the moderation of their opinions. If this hope is ill-founded, the magistrates charged with enforcing the respect due to liberty, security, peace, and the beliefs of its citizens, will not hesitate to fulfill their painful but necessary duty. We feel it necessary to remind you of the following article 13 of the law of 20 April 1825:
“Will be punished by a fine of 16 to 300 francs and by an imprisonment of 6 days to 3 months, those who, by their troubles or disorders committed, even outside an edifice consecrated to the religion of the state, have postponed, interrupted, or prevented religious ceremonies.”
Limoges, 21 March 1828.”
Clearly this placard issued a very different message to the people of Limoges than did the decision of the prefect ruling in Brest to support his
population’s desire to block a mission, and his refusal to prosecute troublemakers who had every intention of disrupting and preventing the religious ceremonies associated with the revival. Indeed, the mayor of Limoges’s proclamation echoes the logic of the bishop of Quimper, who likewise used the Charter to decry the acts of troublemakers and to defend the freedom of the missionaries to publicly perform ceremonies associated with the state religion. Indeed, the mayor of Limoges did exactly what the prelate serving Brest would have liked his prefect to have done. Even more than the placards posted throughout the city of Limoges, the decision of the mayor to bring in several military detachments to ensure order during the mission dramatized the local administration’s views on the relationship between church and state, and the definition of “freedom of religion” which it was committed to defending. Every night, the prefect recounted, the repeated “demonstrations of force suffice to assure tranquillity in all of the parishes, and as assemblies gathered in protest outside the churches, the presence of the military easily dispersed the troublemakers.” 7? Actions against the missionaries continued right through to the end, when some protesters gathered outside
144 Politics as Theater the house where the visiting priests were staying. What the troublemakers said was not discussed; rather, this minor incident was evoked by the prefect of the Haute-Vienne to attest to the general success of the local administration in ensuring order during a mission in a context where the local population “was disposed to support the preachers against their turbulent adversaries.” ” Certainly the administrators of Limoges were not faced with the same clear assertion of a “general will” opposed to the mission that was expressed in the city of Brest. The administrators’ interpretation of this population’s desire for a mission encouraged them to act on behalf of the missionaries and against their small number of opponents. But the real general opinion of the population of Limoges in 1828 is hard to ascertain. What was clear, however, was that administrators of the town had a completely different view of the stance representatives of the state should take vis-a-vis the missionaries, and by the measures they adopted toward the troublemakers dramatized a completely different conception of the relationship between the church and the state than that implied in the actions and writings of the administrators from Brest.
Dramatizing the Juste Milieu: The Struggles over the Missions, 1815-1830 In most cities where the missionaries orchestrated their revivals, adMinistrators pronounced themselves as favoring neither of the extremes typified by the examples of Brest and Limoges. Rather they navigated a complicated middle ground. Most government officials transmitted complicated, mixed messages regarding the key questions raised by the struggles over the missions: how was the Charter, and the freedom of religion, to be interpreted and defended? What was the proper relationship between the church and state? While demonstrations of total support for the missionaries or the protesters organizing against them were rare, the official correspondence regarding the missions reveals that the civil authorities seemed to acknowledge that the staging of the missions was open for public negotiation. This was made apparent by their responsiveness to popular complaints about the missionaries and by their willingness to intervene in small ways to try to control different aspects of the revival. While Brest in 1819 was the only city where the officials
conceded fully to the anticlerical protesters by chasing missionaries from town, officials elsewhere did intervene to control the timing, the content, the physical staging or geography, as well as the personnel or
Performing Monarchy T45 cast who would ultimately appear, particularly in the spectacular outdoor ceremonies of the missions. The missionaries’ desire to conduct regular services at night in order to reach the working population, to stage their revivals in order to supplant carnival celebrations, and to capitalize on the 21st of January for explatory ceremonies all led civil officials to try to intervene and control the timing of the missions. On the matter of the timing of daily spiritual exercises, most civil officials were in agreement about the dangers of allowing missionaries to conduct them under the obscurity of darkness. It was generally assumed that such evening exercises offered easy opportunities for troublemakers to disrupt the mission. Indeed, in the more notorious anticlerical incidents from the period (Brest, Rouen, Strasbourg), the evening exercises became occasions for veritable riots, and as Sevrin has said, “this gave these services the reputation of being very dangerous among the middle class, and served to secure the suspicious and uneasy attention of the government. It led prefects and mayors all over the country to pressure bishops and the parish clergy to hold these
reunions earlier in the day, or at least to shorten them, so that they would be over before total darkness set in.” ”* All the correspondence regarding the missions evokes the dangers of the evening services. Whether overtly critical of the evening services or not, the correspondence makes it clear that they were perceived as a problem, a potential starting point
for anticlerical riots, and as such had to be carefully controlled. Thus this is one case in which the population’s use of certain tactics (disrupting church services at night, using the exit from the church as the occasion for an anticlerical riot) turned the question of the timing of the daily exercises into an issue for public negotiation. On this issue, the local administration always failed to get the missionaries to budge, and so local officials were forced to secure the evening ceremonies by deploying police and military personnel in order to prevent public disorder, thereby leaving some with the impression that they supported the missionaries. The popularity of carnival, and its importance in the material lives of a town’s inhabitants, led many local officials to try to convince missionaries to postpone their revival until the end of this lucrative festive season. While they were always unsuccessful in their efforts, the fact that they were trying to persuade prelates and missionaries to concede to the popular will in this matter is clear in the official correspondence, and this fact was often made public at the time by the local press. We saw an example of this in the case of Marseilles, where Le Phocéen published both
a letter of local merchants requesting a postponement of the mission
146 Politics as Theater until after carnival and an article applauding the efforts of the prefect to
prevail upon the missionaries on their behalf.”* In other cases, local officials tried to mediate between the missionaries and the local population, on the one hand, by allowing the revival to go forth during the carnival season, but, on the other hand, by authorizing public carnival cele-
brations during the mission and thereby condoning festivities which were often subsequently turned against the visiting priests.” The problem of the 21st of January, while occasionally raised by the local population complaining of the missionaries’ excesses, was usually raised by the administrators themselves, conscious of the degree to which the missionaries’ ceremonies departed from the official orders they were given about how to commemorate the execution of Louis XVI. Different decisions by local administrators—to abstain from the missionaries’ ceremonies, to call missionaries in and chastise them for their behavior, or to appear in full regalia in their expiatory processions—reveal a wide range of positions on this issue, more or less clear to the local population. We saw, in the case of Marseilles, civil officials self-consciously absenting themselves from the missionaries’ expiatory ceremony on the 21st of January, although they did participate openly in other public processions and ceremonies.”* In La Rochelle the prefect showed himself
to be hostile to the missionaries’ exploitation of the 21st of January, and in his report he quoted the critical responses of those who, leaving the church, apparently said, “What charlatanism! What monkey business!” 7? Most civil officials mimicked the actions of this prefect of the
Charente-Inférieure; carefully listening for and reporting on the reception of the expiatory ceremonies on the 21st of January, they usually
did little to block them. On the other hand, while reports of civil officials participating in outdoor ceremonies and mission cross processions are common in this period, reports of uniformed civil servants in the context of the missionaries’ special ceremonies on the 21st of January are quite rare. The content of the missions was consistently subjected to surveillance and disciplinary action by local civil officials. Responding to direct complaints about attacks on the Charter, the biens nationaux, and civil marriage in their sermons, or anticipating such complaints based on knowledge of the missionaries’ reception elsewhere, civil officials consistently sought to censor the content of the missionaries’ public sermons. Their first concern was to gather information. In advance of the mission, local administrators would consult with the local prelate, or the missionaries
as soon as they came to town, and interrogate the priests about the
Performing Monarchy 147 intended content of their sermons; once they began preaching, administrators gathered intelligence about their sermons from police officers who were placed in churches, either clandestinely or openly, and from inhabitants known to have participated in the mission.*° In cases of clear infractions, missionaries were called in and reprimanded by civil officials. While many local administrators toyed with the idea of prosecuting priests, no one appeared to have done so.8! However, many officials reported that their negotiations with the missionaries and the presence of visible police spies inside churches had good effects, and tended to temper the oratory of the priests.3 How visible were these efforts of local officials to the population at large? Clearly some public discussion
usually prompted surveillance; consultation with participants in the missions made these people aware of the administrator’s efforts, the spies themselves were often visible within the churches, and certainly the liberal press regularly publicized cases in which infractions were committed and in which civil administrators reprimanded the missionaries. But the ability of the missionaries to evade this surveillance and censorship was equally evident, publicized at once by the sermons of the missionaries, defending their right to preach as they saw fit, as well as by the liberal press, which regularly exposed the missionaries’ tendency to flout local administrators’ efforts. Officials were marginally more successful in controlling where the missionaries conducted their revival. Occasionally there were efforts to block the infamous ceremonies in cemeteries.®? Many disputes erupted regarding the controversial placement of mission crosses. Occasionally the reason for the disputes was revealed in official correspondence, as in Ferté-sous-Jouarre, where the priests’ determination to erect a cross on the site of a dancing hall provoked protest, or in Tarascon, where the demolition of a liberty tree and its replacement by a mission cross led local inhabitants to object.4 More often the records are silent on the cause of the dispute, and demonstrate that because these were sites which were expected to draw large assemblies even after the missionaries had de-
parted, the police seemed most interested in choosing public squares which allowed for easy surveillance. In general, the local civil authorities conceded to the missionaries, and offered their support in securing tranquillity during the erection of their crosses on the sites the priests had chosen. Yet even in these instances, the correspondence regularly alludes to extensive negotiations between prelates, missionaries, and local civil officials regarding the choice of sites; the degree to which such discussions were public is hard to ascertain.** However, since the funding
148 Politics as Theater for the huge crosses usually came from individual donations, and since the local population was usually engaged in the fund-raising process, it is very likely that discussions of the ultimate ceremony when they would be erected would have been a subject of public debate. It was by their responses to the increasingly frequent attacks on these mission crosses that civil officials expressed most clearly their willingness to negotiate with their communities about the public erection of these symbols of the missions. For in their relative laxity toward those who committed sacrilegious acts against these crosses during the Restoration, and in their decision to move them from public squares to the interiors of churches after the Revolution of 1830, the representatives of the state clearly responded to the growing anticlerical sentiment engendered by these symbols of the missionaries. Civil officials most effectively controlled the staging or geography of the mission in their repeated efforts to consign the missionaries to the interiors of their churches. In every case in which the mission was prevented from taking to the streets and transforming the town into a stage for its expiatory spectacles it was because of anticlerical protest. In Dijon the prefect explained his decision to restrict the missionaries to the
interiors of churches by simply evoking the specter of disorder such preachers might excite, whether among the acquirers of biens nationaux or even the pious inhabitants of his region, “who distrust the influence of these outsider priests.” 8° In Arles it was the controversial denial of the last rites to an ex-Jacobin that led authorities to prohibit outdoor ceremonies in 1817.8” In Nimes, after the passage of the Sacrilege Law, the simultaneous arrival of a flood of cheap copies of Tartuffe and two command performances of the comedy during the missionaries’ stay convinced the archbishop to ban all outdoor ceremonies.®*® In Nantes in 1829 it was the potential disorder of the missionaries in the context of the heated discussion in the Chambers of Deputies which led the prefect to limit all the spectacles of the missionaries to the interiors of churches.®?
However, as with all their efforts to control the physical staging of the missions, civil administrators were not always successful in blocking the outdoor ceremonies and processions. Missionaries overtly disobeyed orders to remain inside the churches and used their pulpits to denounce the efforts of government officials, evoking an image of a persecuting state, which their superiors in the ecclesiastic hierarchy repeated in vociferous, often public defenses of the revival and its ceremonies. But civil
administrators also allowed the outdoor ceremonies in many contexts, and made their support for the missions clear by actively deploying the
Performing Monarchy 149 police to protect the followers of the mission or by themselves participating in their spectacles. Indeed it was by their decision to participate or not to participate in the public ceremonies of the missionaries that civil officials most clearly demonstrated their attitude toward the revival. In some cases the missionaries’ efforts to actively engage the official representatives of the state in the outdoor ceremonies produced extensive controversies. In the case of Tarascon in 1819, a controversy erupted because of the subprefect’s efforts not only to force members of the National Guard to appear in the missionaries’ processions but to get those who had participated in the mission’s spiritual exercises to wear the cross symbolizing the mission on their lapels. In fact, the prefect followed advice from the minister of the interior when he criticized the subprefect for trying to force the National Guard to appear in public processions, and explicitly forbade communicants within its corps from wearing the symbol of the mission on their uniforms; he did not prevent them, however, from taking part in the procession around the erection of the mission cross.”° In other cases, administrators directly banned official participation in any of the outdoor processions, citing the law of 24 messidor year 12 which explicitly forbade civil officials from appearing in any public spectacles not
orchestrated by the government.?! Sometimes prefects made this decision preventively, before actual disorders forced their hand, but usually it was in direct response to anticlerical protest; the minor incident in Tain, where the population performed a farandole outside the church on the dimanche des brandons, was enough to convince the leading local official to prohibit civil officials from participating in uniform in the mis-
sionaries’ spectacles.’ Quite often local officials seemed to have compromised on the problem of participating in these spectacles by allowing members of the military and the civil administration to take part in the processions, but not in uniform.”* By and large, however, officials did participate in the missions, often earning the official censure of their superiors in Paris. The examples of large processions, protected and swelled in size by the presence of uniformed National Guardsmen and military personnel, are easy to find. Indeed they constitute the evidence that historians have so often cited to capture the clerical, reactionary bias of this regime, and its willingness to give the missionaries its public, official sanction.** Clearly the evidence presented thus far complicates this image somewhat; civil authorities were very cautious about giving the missionaries their unequivocal and overt support. Yet, in the majority of cases, local civil officials did give the appearance of supporting the
150 Politics as Theater religious revival. In most of the missions between 1815 and 1830, civil officials either lent their material support to protect the security of the missionaries or participated themselves in their spectacular expiatory ceremonies. Yet the mission, as actually performed in any given locality, was always a subject of public discussion. All its details, from its timing to its
setting to its personnel, were open to negotiation. The liberal press played a key role in publicizing the degree to which this was a negotiation, one in which it actively encouraged its readers to participate by pressuring their local officials to censor and discipline and, best of all, to chase the missionaries from town. But the missionaries publicized this fact as well: in their sermons they directly assailed those protesters disrupting the missions, as well as the civil officials who appeared to be conceding to them by trying to block outdoor ceremonies, reschedule evening services, or prevent the erection of a mission cross on a particular site. Prefects, subprefects, and mayors responded to the efforts of their local populations against and on behalf of the missionaries as they made their decisions, but they also were aware of controversies elsewhere, and made decisions about the area under their own jurisdiction with a sense of participating in larger, nationwide controversy. If local officials’ behavior toward the missionaries provided one way for the regime to register its position on this public negotiation, their behavior toward the protesters offered another. Over the course of the Restoration the anticlerical protest against the missionaries swelled, reaching riotous proportions especially after 1825. As we shall see at length in chapter 5, the spate of sacrilegious crimes committed against the missionaries, their crosses, and their ceremonies offered ample opportunity for the regime to weigh in against or in favor of the protesters. But as with the approach civil officials adopted toward the missionaries, prefects, subprefects, and mayors ineffectively and in-
consistently applied the police measures at their disposal against the troublemakers. Like the missionaries, their opponents were, more often than not, given free rein. Indeed, many in the civil administration were sympathetic to the protesters, or at least receptive to their way of conceiving of the missionaries. While the critics of the missionaries denounced and publicized spectacular examples of the government’s support for the religious revival and the political message at its core, the missionaries and their supporters in the church hierarchy continuously complained about the regime’s
Performing Monarchy 151 apparent willingness to turn the full force of the law against the Catho-
lic church as opposed to the “troublemakers” undermining the tranquillity of the missions. If the regime was not always successful in controlling the missionaries, its persistent efforts to do so were interpreted by the church hierarchy as signs of a growing persecution. In their direct pleas to government officials, these men of the collar beautifully expressed the very real threat which these disciplinary measures represented in terms of the long-term relationship between church and state in France. One churchman from Provence relied upon historical precedent and religious necessity in the specific context of a depleted ministry as he asked the minister of the interior to consider the appropriate jurisdiction of mayors and prefects in the matter of the missions. Missions have always taken place in this diocese since the Corcordat, even when the Emperor banned priests from outside from performing them, and they have always had a salutary effect. Curés are rare, those who exist are old and infirm. What would we become if in order to instruct the people to whom we must minister, we need to get the consent of mayors? Because, it’s the mayors, as we all know, who report to the prefects. Our ministry is impossible if we are to be at the mercy of a few accusers. We certainly don’t want to cause disorder; but missions have never caused disorder in this diocese.”°
In response to specific accusations regarding the inflammatory content of their sermons, this prelate defended the missionaries in even more heated terms, invoking the laws of the realm and all of the arguments we saw deployed by the archbishop of Aix in 1820, the bishop of Quimper in 1819, and the bishop of Strasbourg in 1826: the missions were legal, authorized by the king, and protected by the Charter’s freedom of religion; missions (and religion in general) have always served to stave off, not cause, disorder; and if disorder were a problem, it was because of the opposition, not the missionaries. Like so many of his colleagues in the church, this clergyman enjoined his superiors in the state to turn the efforts of the police against “the small handful of troublemakers”: If we knew that the missionaries were guilty [of producing disorder] we would ban them. If you judge them to be so, pursue them. But we cannot, no matter what happens, submit the freedom of religion and the preaching of
God’s words either to the malice of some, or to the demands of prefects, solely informed by mayors. The missions are legal; we know that the king himself regards them as the only means of regenerating public morality. Your Excellency can certainly not wish that we be deprived of their good effects.”°
152 Politics as Theater If the prelates’ letters often express incredulity about the disorder the missions purportedly produced, others acknowledge the opposition they would inspire given the painful but necessary nature of their message. Casting themselves as heirs to the apostles, prepared to be humiliated and to suffer in the name of Christ, they depicted the decision to censor
the missions as a struggle between good and evil, leaving it for the administrators to determine with whom they would cast their lot. Such were the terms of the bishop of Dignes’s defense of the missionaries inspired by a prefectorial denunciation and a ministerial investigation which led to the cancellation of a mission in Manosque in Provence. Those clamoring against the missionaries are society types, usurers, bad citizens, unworthy subjects of his majesty, libertines, unbelievers, and troublemakers. This whole race of people, thanks to our liberals, are ever becoming more numerous, bringing misfortune to France. ... When infernal plots con-
spire to oppose us and our fellow-workers in the orchestration of a mission, ... we will retreat if it is necessary, shaking the dust off of our feet.?’
This quotation reminds us of Sevrin’s depiction of the Restoration as a period when only extreme interpretations made sense; the contradictory “iuste milieu was difficult and easily suspect.” ?® For many prelates of the
Restoration the disciplinary efforts of the state could be seen only as a return to the worst persecution of the Revolutionary era. In their depiction of the “persecution” which the church was suffering at the hands of the Restoration’s civil officials, these prelates were not entirely wrong; for if the regime failed in most cases to control the stag-
ing of individual missions, there is no question that the government’s persistent efforts to curtail their message and control every aspect of their revival had serious, long-term consequences in terms of the relationship between the state and the church in the nineteenth century. The full extent of these consequences would not become clear until after 1830, when the July Monarchy quietly but firmly transferred mission crosses to the interiors of churches, forced priests to say prayers for the new king, and progressively replaced the intransigent noble prelates with more easily controlled “bourgeois-priests.” But the groundwork for these shifts was prepared as a result of struggles with the missionaries throughout the fifteen years of the Restoration. It was the opposite extreme message which mobilized popular anticlerical protest against the missionaries. Rather than seeing the disciplinary state as trying to subjugate the church and revive the worst persecution of the revolutionary era, critics of the missionaries saw in the
Performing Monarchy 153 regime’s apparent public support for them so many signs that a clerical plot was afoot to revive the evils of the Old Regime, defined by a theocracy not known for 300 years. Because of this fear, and in defense of the secular, liberal values born of the Revolution, the people of France rose
up in ever greater numbers against the missionaries and, ultimately, against the regime. The differences which separated the missionaries from the civil officials representing the regime and the willingness of these officials to respond favorably, or at least not punitively, to those or-
ganizing against the missions opened an enormous space in which the central political issues of the period could be worked out. In many ways the expiatory missions of this period defined the terms of public negotiations about the legitimacy of the regime, the principles on which the social and political order should be founded, and the role which the population should play as the “arbiters” of France’s future. But to understand all this we must step beyond the official theatrics of the church and state and turn to the array of practices by which the population demonstrated the impossibility of the politics of oubli, the unacceptability of monarchy organized around the model of the Eucharist, and, most important, turned the theater itself into the perfect vehicle for exposing and resolving the crisis of representation which the “competing commemorations” of this period made manifest.
Theater as Politics
he preceding chapters integrate the Restoration into the long ) history in which the church and state conspired and competed to represent authority in a monarchical mode, particularly in light of the challenges posed by the revolutionary events of 1789-1815. Although the missionaries and the regime responded differently to the dilemmas presented by the twenty-five-year “ceremonial interregnum,” when monarchy did not rule in France, both were guided by the imperative of counterrevolution; in both cases this imperative produced largescale national campaigns and spectacles which directly transposed the struggles of the revolutionary period to the “counterrevolutionary” Restoration. The next three chapters consider the corresponding set of cultural practices by which the population at large participated in the negotiation over legitimate authority. Like the competing spectacles of the church and state, the repertoire of practices now demanding our attention have a long history which spans the Old Regime, the Revolution, and the Empire, and goes beyond the Restoration into later decades of
the nineteenth century. As in Part I, the main purpose of studying the cultural practices of the audiences for whom these spectacles were intended is to understand the legacy of the French Revolution in the early nineteenth century, particularly in light of the counterrevolutionary cultural politics of the church and state between 1815 and 1830. In recent years, historians have recast the Revolution of 1789 in cultural terms, focusing on the array of festivals, symbols, and gestures by which the revolutionaries tried to “remake every nook and cranny of everyday life” in a republican mold. They have emphasized the fact that during the revolutionary decade one could not go about one’s daily life
without participating in politics, when the slightest gesture could be read as a sign of political affiliation. Did one wear the tricolor hat, the red liberty cap, or the white (monarchical) cockade? What language did one use? Did one address one’s fellow citizens with the informal “tu”
and say “citoyen/ne” or the more formal and “aristocratic” “vous” ? Did one continue to live by the Christian calendar, or did one organize one’s life around republican festivals? By their decisions on such everyday matters, the men and women in France participated in and helped IT$7
158 Theater as Politics to constitute the political order during the French Revolution. In the words of Lynn Hunt: Even the most ordinary objects and customs became political emblems and potential sources of political and social conflict. Colors, adornments, clothing, plateware, money, calendars, and playing cards became “signs of rallying” to one side or another. Such symbols did not simply express political positions; they were the means by which people became aware of their positions. By making a political position manifest, they made adherence, opposition, and indifference possible. In this way they constituted a field of political struggle.!
Recent works on festivals and struggles over religion during the French Revolution have emphasized the same politicization of everyday life, and the need to attend to cultural practices both in order to understand the ways in which the political field was constituted in this period and to make sense of the legacy of the Revolution in the nineteenth century. Mona Ozouf’s Festivals and the French Revolution argues that as a result of the revolutionaries’ efforts to impose a rational, national organization of time and space, and a set of rituals and symbols which could wean French citizens from their attachment to Catholicism and monar-
chy, a transfer of sacrality was effected in favor of the secular, liberal principles of the nation.2 While her own work focuses primarily on the prescriptive directives for this festival project issued in Paris, her reading of police reports regarding its reception throughout the country gives us a portrait of the terrain and practices in and through which the struggles over the sacred were played out in this period. In fact she argues that the festival project was largely a failure during the revolutionary decade itself, if one measures success in terms of the degree to which French men and women came to organize their lives around the invented republican calendar and the rites and rituals of the new secular religion of the nation. But the project was an unqualified success, in her view, in the long term; for it left a legacy of secular and liberal values which the French
would ultimately embrace over the course of the nineteenth century. Suzanne Desan’s even more recent work, Reclaiming the Sacred: Lay Religion and Popular Politics in Revolutionary France, inspired by the work
of both Hunt and Ozouf, examines the struggles over religion which emerged during the revolutionary decade precisely in order to understand how the new practices and discourse associated with the Revolution could be used to defend ancient religious rights in ways which enabled Catholic republicans of the Yonne to produce their own conception of the sacred.? In other words, by attending to the specific cultural prac-
Introduction to Part II 1§9 tices of the men and women in the department of the Yonne, Desan is able to demonstrate precisely how the “transferal of sacrality” suggested by
Ozouf was actually accomplished, in a particular context in which republicanism was not necessarily seen as opposed to Catholicism. This recent work on the revolutionary period suggests a certain approach for understanding the legacy of the French Revolution in the nineteenth century which is particularly valuable in the context of the Restoration. Some historians have already begun to move in this direction. Maurice Agulhon’s earlier research on the republican tradition in the nineteenth century, for example, takes seriously the cultural practices around which the political struggles of the Revolution were played out; in his words they left the following legacy for the nineteenth century: By replacing statues of kings with statues of liberty, and ceremonies ordained
and blessed by the Church with civic and civilian festivals, the Republic had demonstrated its ambition to introduce change not only in the major political ideas and institutions, but also in rituals, within the framework of everyday life and, in a word, folklore (using the term in its broadest sense). Following the gigantic Republican experiment, France approached the nineteenth century with two folklores. Not only did it have two political movements (Revolution and counterrevolution) and two systems of thought, but also, and consequently, two symbolic systems.‘
If Desan’s emphasis on the amalgamation of republicanism and Catholicism in the Yonne already complicates this depiction of “two” opposing symbolic systems and practices, Agulhon’s basic assertion that understanding the legacy of the Revolution requires attending to the cultural struggles within the framework of everyday life is absolutely right. This perspective governs my effort to make sense of the political culture of the Restoration.
I take seriously the expansion of the political into the practices of everyday life portrayed by Hunt, the problem of the transferral of sacrality to the secular, liberal principles proposed by Ozouf, and the complex manner in which political struggles were played out, as depicted in the work of Desan, and think all of this through in the light of the counterrevolutionary cultural politics of the church and state during the Restoration. As Part I has already shown, when the Bourbons were restored to the throne in 1815, both the regime and its supporters in the church
reacted to, and in many ways were responsible for transforming, but also consolidating, many legacies of the French Revolution. The politics of oubli and the politics of expiation furthered the politicization of everyday life which characterized the revolutionary decade, even as they
160 Theater as Politics inscribed the emblems and practices of revolution and counterrevolution with new layers of meaning and significance; they also inspired a whole new set of practices by which the population could and did engage in the “struggles over the sacred” or the efforts to determine the foundations on which the postrevolutionary political order should rest. During the Restoration, as during the revolutionary decade, a multitude of minor practices offered the opportunity to participate in and thereby help to constitute the national political order. Did one attend mise-enplace ceremonies in the first year of the Second Restoration? Did one hand over personal possessions bearing the now proscribed emblems of the Revolution and Empire, stay at home and simply continue to use them, or actively traffic in them over the course of the Restoration? Did one respectfully and enthusiastically participate in the religious revival, organize charivaris or theater riots against them, or appeal to local civil authorities to discipline them? Did one actively disfigure the coins of the realm to make the king appear to be a Jesuit, or hang the king in effigy, or laugh at the famous lines of Moliére’s Tartuffe? It was by their decisions on such everyday matters that the men and women of France involved themselves in national politics, and played a critical role in consolidating the various legacies of the French Revolution.
CHAPTER FOUR
“Practicing” Politics in an Age of Counterrevolution
According to the terms laid out in the Charter, the vast majority of French citizens were officially excluded from the practice of politics during the Restoration. Suffrage was limited to one in 360 men; the right to hold office was even more restricted. Even the municipal councils,
which had existed before the Revolution as institutions that gave a broader range of citizens some say in local politics, were between 1815 and 1830 replaced by appointed councils whose power was greatly curtailed. Freedom of expression, freedom to meet in public, and to express one’s views were all officially restricted during the Restoration.
The purpose of this chapter and the next two is to portray the many practices by which French citizens made themselves active participants in politics in spite of these official strictures. If we know anything at all about how, when, and where this complex repertoire of practices was deployed, it is because the police kept careful records of them in their rich dossiers on what they called “seditious” activities. At the National Archives the police bulletins are full of brief reports which hint at this world of unofficial politics, without giving very many details. A report from Grenoble, for example, cryptically directs our attention to public meeting places, and makes us take seriously the importance of songs and different kinds of printed matter in spreading certain ideas: “Public opinion and the political situation deteriorates every day in the Department of Isére . . . nothing is neglected in the ef-
161
162 Theater as Politics fort to foment passions. Discussions in cafés in the cities, songs, prints, extracts of newspapers in the country. In all of the arrondissements of this department the same system is followed.”? But such a report gives
us none of the details we would need to understand how this really worked, who was involved, and what was the content of the “sedition” to which its author alluded. But, fortunately for us, the local police also seized and preserved “seditious” writings, songs, and objects and supplied their superiors with lengthy and detailed reports which help us to understand how and by whom and in what contexts these types of sedition were deployed. Their reports also point to a world of more ephemeral forms of expression—seditious cries and gestures, for example— practices which leave no “collectible” evidence, but which have been preserved for us by detailed narratives of local police officials. The police of the Restoration may not have been very effective at stopping or punishing people for their seditious activities, but, thanks to their careful surveillance, we have the means of portraying this world of unofficial politics.3
The emphasis in this portrait is on the “practices” by which this unofficial politics was constituted. In a political context in which official
participation was so limited, our first task is to understand how the people carved out a space within which they could express themselves. What forms of expression were available? Was there a particular calen-
dar which defined seditious practices? Were there certain privileged venues for political expression? Is there a coherence to the message articulated through this wide range of practices—both in the content and the form which they took? Is this coherence ideological—can we call it
“Bonapartist,” or “liberal,” or “anticlerical,” or “antimonarchical” ? Who was involved in this wide range of practices? To what degree were the practices that the people of the Restoration relied upon drawn from a repertoire used in the Old Regime? To what degree were they refash-
ioned, or new and specific to this postrevolutionary, “counterrevolutionary” moment? We will answer all these complicated questions slowly, in this as well as the next two chapters. Attending first to when and then to where French men and women were most likely to practice politics in
this period, we then pause at great length to analyze how they did so, enumerating the full range of written, oral, gestural, and symbolic practices deployed in this period. Finally, we will look at who it was that participated in politics in these diverse ways.
“Practicing” Politics 163 The Setting: When? Most historians have depicted the early nineteenth century as a period whose calendar was determined by the folkloric traditions usually ascribed to the early modern period.* They have stressed the importance of such events as Carnival, Easter, the rst of May, and the cycle of twelve days stretching from Christmas, on the 25th of December, to the Epiphany, on the 6th of January. The role of the seasons, which organized the people’s work lives, has also been emphasized. The special events in a
given town might have included the celebration of the town’s patron saint day or of private events such as weddings, births, or deaths (since funerals were also occasions for feasts in this period). In addition to witnessing or participating in the special moments in the “folkloric” calen-
dar, French citizens—even those living outside urban centers—were also involved in explicitly political ceremonies orchestrated from Paris, as well as religious spectacles which underscored a particular national, political calendar.° As we have seen in previous chapters, regular annual celebrations were orchestrated for the days commemorating the execu-
tions of Louis XVI and Marie Antoinette (the 21st of January and the 16th of October); the kings’ days—Saint Louis (August 25th) and Saint Charles (November 4)—were occasions for feasts, games, and free theater performances. A number of Catholic holidays were also singled out by the regime for special celebration, usually in the form of a procession
organized by local churchmen with the participation of local civil officials. Major national political events were represented in the local arena in the form of exceptional celebrations. The birth of the Second Restoration was celebrated all over the country, as we have seen, in the context of locally organized mise-en-place ceremonies. When the duc de Berry was assassinated in 1820 and when Louis XVIII died in 1824, ex-
ceptional periods of mourning were enforced and local funeral ceremonies were organized. Charles X’s coronation in 1825 was celebrated with pomp not only at Reims; local officials organized festivities to mark this occasion all over France. The Papal Jubilee was given special pub-
licity by the missionaries who reproduced the kind of expiatory ceremonies in which the king participated in Paris wherever they traveled and preached in 1826. Other minor events which erupted into the lives of people living all over France were political discussions taking place in Paris, but publicized locally; laws, announced by official placards and read in markets and churches; or the publication of pastoral letters,
164 Theater as Politics posted in public or circulating in various forms. The royal family also traveled throughout the kingdom, gracing even the smallest towns with official visits. Even the king himself made appearances of the sort depicted in The Red and the Black, providing local notables with the opportunity to jockey for position in competing for the king’s attention.°® The precise way in which these external events were represented in the local arena was dependent on local officials and on local circumstances; because of the degree of improvisation officially encouraged there was not absolute uniformity in the national calendar in the lives of most French men and women. However, there were national points of reference, a set of specific dates which came to represent the government, and/or the religious revival, and which offered a framework for express-
ing opposition. There is no question that the “folkloric” calendar also governed certain types of political expression. Carnival offered opportunities for drawing upon old and accepted forms of inverting and mocking authority, and these were seized in this period, particularly because the carnival season also often brought missionaries to town. Patron saint days likewise offered people living in a particular locality the opportunity to express themselves. Exceptional local events, such as the visit of a national dignitary, the campaigns of the missionaries, or the publication of a local archbishop’s pastoral letter, provoked seditious acts ac-
cording to a “local” calendar. But the police records from this period demonstrate that a wide range of seditious practices also obeyed a national calendar, a political calendar whose reference points date from the Revolution, the Empire, and the competing spectacles of the state and the church of the Restoration. Although very rarely, some opponents of the regime chose key dates from the Revolution and the Empire to express their discontent with the reigning monarchy. In the Ardéche some merchants held a feast on the 14th of July in 1827 at which they audibly toasted liberty.” The prefect of the Lot announced in his report from 1829 that although no reunions
were organized to celebrate the 14th of July, “it is with pain that I learned that in some localities this deplorable day was remembered with
a sort of solemnity.” ® August 15th, celebrated during the Empire as Saint Napoleon’s Day and during the Restoration as the day commemorating the Vow of Louis XIII, was more commonly seized on as an Opportunity to remember Napoleon and criticize the reigning monarchy. In Toulouse in 1815 it was the supporters of the king, the fervent verdets, who took advantage of this day to brutally murder a local general known to be a supporter of Bonaparte. After having attended the
“Practicing” Politics 165 procession in honor of the Vow of Louis XIII, the general was attacked and stabbed more than fifty times for his apparently insincere royalism.? In the same year, supporters of Napoleon in a small town near Dieppe in the Seine-Inférieure seized the occasion of the 15th of August to go to their local church and worship before an altar where a statue representing Saint Napoleon had been destroyed.!° A few years later in the same department an inhabitant of Rouen placed a placard outside the church of Saint Vivien, announcing local festivities in honor of Saint Napoleon, in an affiche which borrowed the formula for announcing official events.!! Publicly acknowledging official celebrations from the Revolution and the Empire was clearly difficult, and the police reports are relatively silent on the wide range of practices which might have been deployed on such days in private, or in public, but which went undiscovered. More common than using these forbidden dates was the practice of orchestrating a kind of “anti-féte” to the regime’s and the missionaries’ official celebrations.” The 21st of January, celebrated as a festival between 1794 and 1799, and commemorated as a day of mourning by the regime, and of expiation by the missionaries between 1815 and 1830, became an occasion for many seditious acts during the Restoration. Nonparticipation by local officials or the general population in the commemorations was one way of expressing opposition to the official celebration, but some French citizens went further and even organized reunions and balls on the eve of the day of mourning. In some cases the festivities were written off as nonpolitical; music and merrymaking on such a day were considered scandalous, but not dangerous. But other cases worried the authorities more. For example, one prefect wrote of a ball in the Lot-et-Garonne, organized on the zoth of January by a veteran of Napoleon’s army, which was attended by “all of the best-known local enemies of the government.” !° The most serious case of sedition carried out on the 21st of January took place in the Seine-Inférieure, where a man from a small commune described as “one of the hottest partisans of the Terror” reproduced the same ritual annually: he walked through his town with a mannequin of Louis XVI, held a mock trial, and then killed the king in effigy. There were no details in the archives regarding what became of this man, but it does seem that he was permitted to do this more than once, so the authorities could not have treated him too harshly.'* In the Dordogne, in 1822, a similarly revolutionary message was expressed when someone posted a placard that called for the head of Louis XVIII, “so that his blood can wash the stain he dares to impute to the French
166 Theater as Politics nation,” and concluded with “Long Live Napoleon II.” 15 In Toulouse the critics of the government were more menacing still. David Higgs’s study of Restoration Toulouse describes an incident “on the 21st of January, 1830, [when] the Toulouse theater performed ‘A-Propos patriotique’ and a rendition of “The Marseillaise.’ The Garde nationale formed
up, and together with the Law Students noisily paraded around the town singing the national anthem.” Royalists in town apparently did not respond, but, in Higgs’s words, “they doubtless appreciated to the full the symbolism of armed men and youth swaggering across the public space of the city singing the song of the Revolution,” and, I would add, particularly on the 21st of January.'® Of all the national festivals orchestrated annually to celebrate the monarchy, it was the saint days of the two kings that became the most favored occasions for a wide range of seditious acts. If all of the regime’s national holidays were meant to be improvised at the local level, it was the kings’ saint days which were meant to approximate most closely the kind of popular festival organized by the towns themselves in honor of their local patron saint. Feasts, games, and free theater performances were among the forms of entertainment offered. Yet local officials still seemed to have trouble getting the residents of their towns to participate. And when they did participate, their festivals often turned into occasions to laugh at and criticize, rather than to honor, the king. The prefect of the Puy-de-D6me complained about nonparticipation in the festivities associated with Saint Louis in the two cities of Clermont-
Ferrand and Issoire, where large numbers of people “made an effort to ostentatiously avoid appearing at the solemn mass on that day.” !” In the Haut-Rhin the day of Saint Charles was similarly unpopular. The prefect noted, “the inhabitants [of Mulhausen] have demonstrated, on this beautiful day, a shocking indifference. All of the factories were operating as if it were an ordinary day.” The white flag could be seen only on the city hall, outside the residences of a few city officials, and outside the homes of perhaps four or five citizens.18 In one town in the Ardéche the people used the occasion of Saint Charles in 1825 to demonstrate their disfavor with the new king, as opposed to his predecessor. Describing the festivities of Saint Charles, the prefect explained, “the families known for their estrangement from the government (and who had, however, enthusiastically attended such festivities in previous years) did not come back this year.” 1?
In Grenoble the festival of Saint Louis turned into a struggle between the local supporters of the king and the larger number of critics, who dis-
“Practicing” Politics 167 suaded the majority of the inhabitants of the town from taking part in the day’s festivities. The prefect wrote that great support for the king was expressed in the participation of a large number of inhabitants of the city, in the mass and a ball held on the eve of the festival. But he added that these signs of attachment to the royal family by one part of the population brought out “the extreme coolness” of an even greater part of the population. On the day of the festival itself, “Almost all the shops in town were open. Work was not in the least interrupted. Public edifices and the homes of functionaries and a few royalists were the only buildings lit up. Finally, the people were dissuaded from taking part in the dancing and other diversions which were usually very popular. The night, in the garden of the city hall, beautifully illuminated for the occasion, saw a reunion of but a very small group.” ° In Toulouse, the celebration of Saint Louis went off quite well, with “the inhabitants giving themselves over to gaiety.” But at night, after the participants had gone home, the musicians hired for the festivities began stopping in front of the homes of different local officials and playing seditious songs which included such refrains as “Down with Louis, Down with Louis.” People drinking in a neighboring café joined in chorus with the musicians. The café had to be evacuated.?! More often than singing their opposition to the king on his saint day, critics expressed themselves with seditious cries. In Rouen, on the day of
Saint Louis in 1820, the local liberals organized themselves to shout “Long live the Charter!” as the procession passed before the local authorities, and as the rest of the people assembled shouted “Long live the king!” 2? In Grenoble, two years earlier, a group of veterans similarly timed their “Long Live the Emperor! Shit for the King!” to coincide with the firing of the cannon and the shouts of “Long Live the King” which marked the opening of the festivities in their town.?3 Even republicans could be heard shouting amidst the “Long live the King’s” of their fellow citizens. In Nantes one man was heard shouting “Long live the Republic” and was quickly carted off to jail.24 Cafés were often the sites
of seditious cries and toasts. In the same year one rather drunken offender said, “Poor Napoleon II! My heart is with you right to the very last drop of my blood.” > In 1825, during the festival of Saint Charles a group of old soldiers proposed a toast to the health of the Emperor Napoleon and “expressed out loud the most seditious of sentiments.” 7° Voices of discontent could also be expressed in print. In Marseilles, where according to the authorities the festivities in honor of Saint Charles
were quite exemplary, the local newspapers seized the opportunity to
168 Theater as Politics mock the event and offer an alternative interpretation of the celebration for their readers. In the prefect’s words: Only one painful sentiment could sadden me in the wake of the grand solemnity, and that is provided by reading the newspapers of Marseilles. Only one... The Journal of the Mediterranean, offered a description of the festivities in a manner worthy of its object. All the others, a veritable public plague, born of the revolutionary disease, took advantage of the occasion to make their discordant voices heard, by criticizing in the most impudent fashion the organization of the festival, and by insinuating false and absurd accusations against the public authorities.2”
Placards were often erected on these days, saying simply either “Long live the great Napoleon!” as in Dieppe in 1816, or specifically attacking
the current monarch, as the placard in Saint-Germain-en-Laye which read “Mort a Charles X! Vive Napoléon II!”2° In one case in Angers, protesters simply tore down the poster announcing the day’s festivities, and stomped on it until it was completely destroyed.*? Free theater performances, which featured royal themes, often contained key lines that offered opportunities for the audience to demonstrate its support or criticism of the monarchy. In Rouen the boos outweighed the applause in 1823 as the actor pronounced, “And to follow the Bourbons, that’s to fly toward glory.” *° Three years later, in the same city, the festival of Saint Charles was the occasion for booing and hissing to the lines “Long live the King, Live Forever the King,” from La Par-
tie de Chasse.*' In St-Quentin in 1825, the audience expressed its displeasure with its monarch by standing up and walking out together as soon as the curtain was raised on the play chosen for the celebration of Saint Charles. The following day the local newspaper contained an article which made fun of the poor showing at the ultimate performance,
ironically speaking of the thirty to forty spectators who “filled” the room. Members of another audience, in Brest in 1827, took a slightly different tack. Rather than walking out as the curtain went up on La Croix d’Honneur, they simply whistled and prevented the play from
beginning. Protests in the context of king’s day celebrations also took the form of attacks on the symbols of the monarchy erected early in the regime. In the Landes, for example, a ball was given on the eve of the festival of Saint Louis, and several young men used this occasion to deface the bust of Louis XVIII standing in the central dance hall while shouting insults at the king.34 A similar case took place in Besancon, where one man attacked not a bust of the monarch but the white cockade which repre-
“Practicing” Politics 169 sented the Bourbons. For squashing the cockade under his shoe while shouting insults at the king on the day of Saint Louis, this man was sentenced in 1816 to five years in prison. In 1819, in honor of precisely the same festival, the king granted the offender a pardon.*° The festival of Saint Louis was also an occasion for critics of the regime to flaunt the prohibited emblems of the revolutionary and imperial periods. In Bordeaux, for example, a small tricolor flag was put up during the night before this festival in 1824. In Dieppe the protesters were bolder. On the day of Saint Louis in 1816 a group of young men came out wearing red carnations on their lapels.*° Special events which celebrated the monarchy at the local level offered many the opportunity to express their opposition. Visits from members of the royal family, usually accompanied by processions, were often occasions for seditious cries.*” Popular protest was also expressed on days
marking important events in the lives of the reigning Bourbon family, such as the death by assassination of the duc de Berry. The extravagant coronation at Reims in 1825 became the target of criticism for songwriters, journalists, caricaturists, and novelists.** In some cases, local authorities merely complained of seditious speech, or reported on the “plot” of liberals to stir up trouble on the eve of this important national event.*? But in some towns the local festivities for the coronation were sabotaged, as in the Gers, where the candles intended to be used to light a bonfire were thrown into the river, and where the “Long live the king! Long live the Bourbons!” on the placard announcing the day’s festivities were defaced to read “Long Live his Majesty Na-
poleon II.” *° It was by placards posted in the middle of the night that critics of the government most clearly articulated their concerns regarding this particular event; in the Lot a series of placards found in May and then again in June of 1825 illustrate that for many the coronation augured a return to the worst tyrannies of the Old Regime, and seemed to demand outspoken support for the Charter, the rule of law, and the secular foundations of monarchy. Expressing the fears of the authors were placards reading “No more lords,” “War against tyrants and despots,” “Down with serfdom,” while other placards clearly pointed to the political principles, groups, and institutions that would protect the French: “Long live the liberals, the Charter, and the King,” simply “Liberty,” “Honor to the deputies of the left,” “Union of liberals, radicals and Carbonari,” and “The Law, the Nation, and the King.” *! In Paris, on the side of a bridge, written in large letters in chalk were the words “En t’ait fait sacré, tu sera massacré.” The English translation doesn’t capture
170 Theater as Politics either the rhyme or the insult implied in threatening the king with the familiar tu: “Because you have had yourself anointed, you will be massacred.” #2
Most festivals orchestrated by the regime did not excite active protest; then again, most royal festivals were also not terribly popular. Ad-
ministrative reports show that members of the National Guard, the army, and officials of the local administration regularly took part in the ceremonies of state, but most people seemed content to stay home or to remain on the sidelines and not respond in one way or the other to the regime’s ceremonial efforts. Yet the evidence considered thus far makes it clear that certain national dates became occasions for similar sorts of seditious practices all over France, a fact which is itself important in trying to understand how and when certain practices assumed “national” dimensions. However, as much as the regime’s regular annual festivals and its exceptional visits and celebrations offered a national framework within which French citizens could and did express opposition in various ways, the evidence provided thus far demonstrates that this calendar did not provoke sustained opposition of a sort that was truly dangerous for the regime.
The Setting: Where? Certain venues seemed to emerge repeatedly among the police files as particularly fertile ground for unofficial politics. Most important among them were natural gathering places: cafés, cabarets, the marketplace, and the theater. Within a given town there seemed to be a general understanding among the inhabitants as well as the authorities that certain public spaces—whether cafés, bookstores, or pharmacies—were frequented by people sharing a particular political perspective. Residential patterns also followed political lines.42 Thus a seditious cry emitted in one neighborhood as opposed to another, or a tricolor ribbon affixed to the door of an official’s home, or the singing of a Bonapartist song outside a royalist café had specific, easily decipherable meaning for the inhabitants of a given town. Certain venues, such as the town marketplace or the regional fair, were critical in the unofficial politics of the Restoration because of convenience
or tradition. The local marketplace was a place frequented by most French citizens, even those living in remote villages. Local news was exchanged here, either by formal announcements and placards or, infor-
“Practicing” Politics I7I mally, through gossip. Because everyone was present here at a certain time in the week it was a convenient site at which to erect placards or leave seditious symbols for people to find.** The regional fair was an important place in popular festive culture. Because the fair was often a host to street
theater, dancing, and drinking, the fair provided a space similar to the café and the theater, and an event similar to a local festival. But as a link to a national market and to urban values the fair played an especially important role.** News from outside the community arrived through contact with such fairs; traveling salesmen were thus often blamed for the organization of certain forms of protest which began to appear in different parts of France. Traffic in seditious objects, such as silks embroidered with Napoleonic busts from Lyons or tobacco cases mocking Charles X from Strasbourg, took place at these fairs. Objects representing national political ideologies were thus made available for merchants (and private individuals) to buy and bring back to the local arena. Police reports and circulars addressing the problem of traveling salesmen offer the government’s vision of the geography of unofficial politics,
highlighting the key role which the fair and, in particular, its peddlers play. According to the authorities, “France [was] covered with peddlers” who travel “into the tiniest hamlets, and reach even the most isolated habitations.” Taking advantage of local fairs to sell their wares and “spread their alarming news,” these peddlers were deemed particularly dangerous because of the exaggerated influence they could have on “the peasant who has never lost sight of the bell tower of his village, [to whom] these peddlers seem to be a kind of oracle, the more believable the more readily they approach him in their language and their customs.” This was the language of the minister of police, who in a circular from 1815 enjoined his prefects to do everything in their power to control these traveling salesmen, who so easily played the part of “agents spreading lies and intrigue.” *° In a circular from 1823 the minister of police reminded his prefects of the laws on colportage, at the same time as he offered the following depiction of the network of public places in which the peddlers exerted their insidious influence:
sedition. |
Mr. Prefect, I have drawn your attention several times to the problem of these
travelers, who under the pretext of commercial interests, traverse France, and seem to have no object other than to plant wherever they go the seeds of The reports which come to me from different points of the realm prove that the same maneuvers are being carried out today, only more actively than
172 Theater as Politics ever. Alarming news, declamations against the government, nothing is spared;
and these phrases, repeated in inns and cafés, and other public places will spread through the population of the cities and the country, and produce the most unfortunate consequences.*’
A large proportion of the seditious offenses committed during the Restoration took place in cafés and cabarets.*® Newspapers of various parties were available there, and so it was a natural site for political discussion.” From a letter from the prefect of the Mayenne to the minister of the interior in 1823, asking for advice on how to handle people who read extracts from newspapers aloud in public places, we get a nice por-
trait of the role of cafés and cabarets in the propagation of the printed word, particularly, in his mind, in the rural context. In the cities, this tactic [of reading extracts from newspapers aloud] produces very little effect, because even in the cabarets there are men who can themselves read, and therefore have no need to listen. But in countryside such as one finds in Mayenne, where for every one hundred people there are hardly ten who can read their church books, when a traveler or a local reads, in his own fashion, the newspaper in a cabaret, he is sure to draw a large number of auditors who can’t appreciate what it is he’s trying to convince them of.*°
Some café owners provided a space for people who shared their political perspective in which to congregate, while others tried to protect themselves from police scrutiny by avoiding politics or even by denouncing
people who sang or spoke against the government in their establishments.°! Whether explicitly encouraged by the owners or not, it was here that the people met, drank, talked, and found occasions to scream, sing, and act out their opinions. Despite well-placed informers, it was difficult to prosecute people arrested for crimes in cafés, either because witnesses
refused to testify or because drunkenness was an easy and acceptable
excuse. The theater was a public space which offered particularly fertile ground for political expression during the Restoration. The parterre (pit) has a long history in France as a place from which people could voice their opinions.** But in the Restoration this arena became peculiarly important. Throughout the Restoration the police tried to get the theater under control, and the many ordinances penned in these years defining proper conduct for the theater offer a guide to the many ways in which the people expressed themselves in this particular venue. One ordinance enacted by the mayor of Rouen in 1821 was typical.** It contained provisions which prohibited the audience from demanding a play
“Practicing” Politics 173 that had not been announced in advance (Article II), from walking or talking in the corridors during a performance (Article XXVII), or from otherwise troubling the tranquillity of the spectators by clamors or signs
of disapproval of any kind, before, during, or after the performance (Article XXVIII). Actors were not allowed to add anything to a previously accepted script, to respond or speak directly to the audience (Article XIX), or to read notes thrown onto the stage by members of the audience (Article XVI). The director of the theater could not be called to the stage by the audience (Article XV) or go on stage without the direct permission of the police, who were to be given a full account of what he would say in advance (Article XVII). Intermission was limited to between five and twenty minutes (Article XVI); the auditorium was to be vacated and closed immediately following performances (Article XII). The police files describing theater incidents bear testimony to the fact that each of these provisions was repeatedly violated at one point or another during the Restoration. All over France, men and women went to the theater and whistled, booed, and hissed. They distributed flyers, posted placards, and read one play in the parterre while another was performed on stage. They demanded the performance of plays other than the ones announced, requested the appearance of the director of the theater, and clamored for (and were often granted) the repetition of particular lines that had some bearing on a local or national political issue. The regime used the theater to celebrate the king’s days, and spectators expressed their support for or criticism of their king by applauding or booing when he was represented on stage.°> Sometimes the king and his family were attacked even when a play had no obvious connection to royal themes at all. In one case reported from Elbeuf, an incident took place during a “fantasmagoric” spectacle; as a series of monstrous figures were featured on stage, someone in the audience screamed, “Voila Louis XVIII,” “Voila la Duchesse d’Angouléme,” “Voila le Duc de Bordeaux,” and “Voila le Duc d’Angouléme” to the great amusement of the spectators.°° While political expression in the theater never became dangerously violent, it was persistent and on some occasions achieved a national level of organization, and so seemed quite alarming to the authorities.*” In an article about the theater incidents from the Restoration period, Alain Corbin argues that disturbances in this particular venue were important for a range of social and political reasons. He argues that in this period different groups used the theater to establish and to maintain their social identity.°® But Corbin also points to explicitly political divisions
174 Theater as Politics that provoked theater incidents. Liberals and royalists sat on opposite sides of the theater, or in the parterre as opposed to the loges, and responses to plays turned into screaming matches between sections of the audience.>? According to Corbin, the inside of the theater—split between a left and right—symbolically reproduced the Chamber of Deputies, even in theaters in small towns. In the town of Bernay, in the Eure, the follow-
ing scene took place in the theater: “On one side all the spectators had white bouquets, while on the other everyone had red. The faction with the white rose had announced that they would demand the favorite tunes of Henry IV.” °° Evoking the deeper political meaning of such incidents, Corbin offers the following portrait of the theater: The playful character of the place, devoted as it was to fantasy, authorized each person to take himself for a parliamentary orator. To the censorship exercised against the plays, to the surveillance which meddles in the audience’s affairs, opponents reply by adapting the theatrical venue through astonishing practices. This subverts the very representation at the center of the theater; it abolishes the temporal distance separating the dramatic action from the great political debates of the moment. The continuous switching between past and present, real and imaginary allows for a confusion of roles, among the actors as well as the audience. The applause, the whistles, the cries, the boos, a cough can, depending upon the circumstance, sanction the play of the actors, the text to be applied, the comportment of the adversaries seated in the auditorium or the intervention of the gendarmerie.*!
In his depiction of the theater, Corbin comes closest to evoking the argument I will make in chapter 6 regarding why the theater became a favored venue for protesting against the missionaries and the regime during the Restoration. It was precisely because of the carnivalesque character of this site, the fact that by their actions the audience could subvert “the very representation at the center of the theater,” that the theater became the perfect place for exposing and criticizing the crisis of representation suffered by the regime; but it was also why it was turned so easily against the spectacles of the missionaries. In a side comment, Corbin suggests that the perspective of the missions might help to explain the popularity of the theater in the unofficial politics of the Restoration.®? Corbin’s intuition is correct; again and again, in city after city, protesters demonstrated that the theater was the perfect venue in which to organize an anti-féte against the spectacular ceremonies of the missionaries. The theater in the Restoration enabled protesters to offer a response to, a reproduction and a carnivalesque reiteration of the religious revival of the missionaries more than of the Parliament.
“Practicing” Politics 175 The activities in cafés, cabarets, and the theater often spilled into the streets. People leaving cafés continued to sing seditious verses or shout “Vive l’Empereur” as they passed by the homes of local officials or statues of their ex-emperor.® Despite efforts by the police to disperse audiences after incidents in the theater, they often congregated in the square in front of the theater, continuing to disturb the authorities for hours after the performance.” The streets became a favored venue for criticizing the missionaries, who were themselves turning the main thoroughfares of towns into theaters for their expiatory spectacles. Likewise, key sites in town which were highlighted by the missionaries’ processions— sites where guillotines or liberty trees had been replaced by mission crosses— became the focus of protests, sacrilegious mockeries, and even violence. In towns where missionaries were unwelcome, protesters assembled in the squares in front of the homes of ecclesiastical and civil officials who had invited and were offering support to the visiting priests; these assemblies became very large, as we saw in the case of Brest, where two to three thousand citizens joined together in the traditional, oft-deployed practice of the charivari. The church itself, the venue to which the mission was often restricted, became the focus of a wide range of seditious and sacrilegious acts. Because the laws defining seditious activities explicitly excluded from prosecution those acts which took place in private, the police records are often silent on the oppositional practices exercised in people’s homes. However, the numerous police reports which acknowledge the need to abandon efforts to prosecute offenders because their seditious speech was uttered not in public but in the privacy of their own homes invite us to imagine the kinds of seditious acts which may have gone unpunished in this context. As we ponder the many forms of symbolic sedition practiced in this period, and in particular the traffic in objects bearing illegal images and emblems, we are forced to imagine what French citizens did in the privacy of their own homes as they integrated such objects into their everyday lives.
The Action: How? Written forms of protest, and particularly the placard, occupy a privileged place in the police files because, to a greater extent than some of the oral, gestural, or symbolic forms that will be considered, they were thrust into public view, and therefore relatively easy for the authorities
176 Theater as Politics to collect. The official placard, publicizing a recent law passed by the government, spreading the news of a local prelate’s pastoral letter, or announcing a coming state ceremony or mission, played a critical role in spreading local and national news. The practice of reading these aloud as they were posted at key points in town—near the city hall (if there was one), on the church wall, or in the marketplace—made these critical purveyors of information intelligible to a largely illiterate population.® The unofficial placard often constituted a direct response to this official use of print during the Restoration. Official arrétés (orders) and announcements were destroyed and replaced, or merely defaced; or seditious placards parodied the form of the official placard, either trying to grant the authors and their message the status afforded by an official pronouncement, or mocking local authorities by using their language and their forms. But the seditious placard also mimicked the official placard in its ability to spread information, to provoke public discussion, and even to inspire and organize other forms of protest. Seditious placards written as a form of protest appeared in different shapes and sizes in this period. They could be as small as an index card, and thus be easily concealed in one’s pocket until they were posted for others to read. In such a case it is likely that the author showed it around before posting it, since it would hardly have attracted much attention, nor would it have been very easy to read once it was displayed.®* Or one
could transform a public edifice into a placard by writing on it a message using coal; this made it harder for the police to take it down, and it allowed for a somewhat less ephemeral effect.°” Most often, placards were medium-size, readable from a distance, but most appreciated up close, where the details of an icon or smaller words placed around the edges could be seen.°* They were hung most often on public edifices out-
doors—on church walls, the wall near the marketplace, or the doors of residences of important officials. But they were also hung inside, especially inside theaters. To avoid being caught, people hung their placards in the middle of the night. Sometimes only one placard was posted, while other copies were mailed directly to the local officials whom they criticized.©? Another tactic was to plaster a town with lots of copies of the same placard.”” Because the handwriting was the only clue the authorities had to track down culprits, authors of placards tended to write them in a disguised hand.”! The meaning of the placard was as often inscribed in its placement as in its contents. For example, in order to evoke the specter of the clerical plot, and the threat that the priests would soon control the government,
“Practicing” Politics 177 one protester turned the door of the home of the minister of ecclesiastical affairs and education into a placard by writing, “Here will reign the priests (la calotte); the French are all in the dung (la crotte).” This par-
ticular act apparently drew the attention of passersby, who stopped, commented, and caused what the police official described as a “public scandal.” 72 Another carefully placed placard protesting against the “cler-
ical plot” appeared in Rouen, where the local churchmen were suspected of controlling the civil authorities. Here the site chosen was the courthouse, and in this case one did not have to read to clearly appreciate the message, since next to the text which read “Young people, it is
here then, in our city, that this sordid race would like to dictate our laws,” was a drawing of a man in clerical garb hanging from a gallows.”
Appropriating the form of the official placard, protesters directly responded to their local authorities, their laws, their religious pronouncements, and their ceremonies. One Bonapartist placard, which announced the celebration of the 15th of August as Saint Napoleon’s Day, borrowed the formula of the official festival arrété to do so. The placard, which read “Festival of St. Napoleon / According to the Ordinance of the
Mayor of Rouen / In light of the deliberation of ..../ 1806 concerning the ...,” was posted on the door of the church in the middle of the night before the 15th of August in 1818 so that local officials arriving in the morning to celebrate the regime’s Vow of Louis XIII would have found themselves confronted with the fact that the festival which this new religious holiday was designed to replace was hardly forgotten.”* Similarly, a placard posted during the night before the 24th of January responded directly to the official arrété announcing the day of mourning for Louis
XVI, posted and celebrated but a few days before. This poster adopted the general form of a festival announcement, but in its message it rejected the efforts of the regime to “force us to hold a funereal and expiatory service for the death of Louis XVI. What an excess of villainy! Instead of imposing this humiliating tribute to the innocent and generous people of France... let the odious head of Louis XVIII fall, so that his blood can wash the stain that he dares to impute to the French nation. Vive Napoleon II!” ”* Protesters could merely borrow certain features of the official placard without parodying the whole; one Bonapartist placard, for example, which began by mocking the physical attributes of Louis XVII concluded with the following phrase, typical of official pronouncements: “It is forbidden for anyone to remove this affiche.” 7° Official placards were themselves destroyed or defaced.”’ In one particularly funny incident, the placard describing the planned festivities for
178 Theater as Politics Saint Charles’s Day offered the occasion for some to imply the functioning of a clerical plot in their town, when they added the following note to the bottom of the official placard: To end the festivities in such a way as to give unequivocal proof of their complete submission, the civil and military authorities will kiss the asses of the ecclesiastical authorities.”*
Just as playing with the official placard allowed protesters to convey several messages at once, other standard printed forms were adopted to convey complex messages quite economically. In Besancon, the author/s of one placard used the form of the theater affiche (bill) to mock local church officials in the context of the local celebration of the Papal Jubilee. Announcing a performance of Tartuffe with a special intermission
featuring the local “hypocritical [churchmen] dancing a pas de deux with nuns [from a local convent],” this particular affiche raised the spec-
ter of the church’s hypocrisy and problematic theatricality both in its content and its form.”? Likewise, a “For Sale” sign posted outside the archbishop’s palace in Rouen at the height of the controversy over his unpopular pastoral letter in the spring of 1825 allowed the sign’s author to invoke the widespread rumor that he, his subordinates, and their spiritual services could be “bought” at the same time that it asked him to leave.8° Exactly the same message was repeated in another version which
appeared the following year on the occasion of the mission in Rouen; now the message read “Church to rent, missionaries to chase, a curé to reform for having invited them.” (In French this rhymes: “Eglise a louer; missionaires a chasser; curé a reformer pour les avoir demandes.”)*'
This second formulation was repeated, word for word, in a placard which appeared on the church door in the Moselle in response to a mission in Metz.°2
Most frequently, placards contained the time-honored formula “Down with this” or “Long live that,” usually filled in with “Down with Louis XVIII” or “Down with Charles X” and “Long live Napoleon” or “Long live Napoleon II” in this period. These were often attached to specific concerns. In the small town of Baqueville in the Seine-Inférieure, a “Long live the Emperor” followed a complaint that Louis XVIII was
not fulfilling his ancient obligation to provide bread at a reasonable price. Quite explicitly stating that “if Louis XVIII doesn’t give us our bread at a just price, our Emperor surely will,” this particular placard ends by evoking the symbolic representations of the two regimes: “Down with the white flag, Long live the tricolor and liberty, Long live the Em-
“practicing” * eing” Politi Politics
oe 2b a ee 2 .
179
|— — CU, Ff 2 RRS. oe GU | ... _ _i i|. (i_\'|-— oo ec ee... DS Se & i — a UDLhLmrhmrCU setae
oo os SEG ER aS i oe ee Cg) SLE 4 Sao es ition! °F gee Se See See SENS EAR SSSR — . a -
Co ge — Se aR Ra ess SENS ee RSE Re i. Es EL ER |
Tnxwe nyeK FENNXX MAY A aSO RP 4 oe oe Re Sok Rea as ae a Se ae fe ES Oe Ne eae sone mone epee 2a
: SOS ee Sa eee Sou ee Lis age Came "atk, “Messe See. es SRE os ce RUG Rea Rape Ces
| &. Oss ve fr 13YY . . ajuao i Se i |
2 CC oe of ee Ce
Rn ee 2 SRR -. Se - _ eeLo 4 — 2 _— | os
— a eee “de pee . es oo
ene ieee eaei Ge ooee oN zs |. Ree — Soa ae Ses Suh Ee SBiuenene cue a ee Se Se ae er 5, Ra ee ee yee
F ‘ ve FF ss ee se ee eure “~ | aaa Pieure . “Down with Charles X, live down li wi Ree atholic clergy, France, don’tLong sle Re bs rsotograph ionalbyArchi Pariees Sheryl Kroen iberty, P
, don’t sleep!” Nat!
e
peror, because the Bourb m83, Placard ?because urbons make usr stock sick Bow stomachs.” Sain SICK TO OUinsul Vthe atured here:
seus | ; ut his obesit h against nsults abo ! , placards most " ‘tica nee : xX commonl
icles os his or hie wan 7 y attacked his ecclesiasti
policies ministers’ overzealous sa Sete heOF techa upport for the priests and
: " Ww represented the feudal O1Rta; ofthethe mission gime. In Strasbourg, in wake Meee ones
‘ ; eone posted which annot d x ‘d wn whth > vcard | mission in 18 2 Praca ounced, “Down with Charl olic clergy, Long live People lib se doe of seca!” Th vat g live liberty, F his asic message found its w Bee he places all on
nasi ay onto walls ce, merged with an i Ww Peted the and wriest r franc 3 iconography which associ and
u7
e
an as a cleri
ing with the Jesuits and which f “Tine hitmealf aoa cere ric
ee fees eatured the king himself Placards played 3 yed several critical roles | aaa s in the unoffici iti oa Ae hen official politics of th ss: och ore meral as they were, they offe eople cee la , they to offered occasions f en an e opinion, respond di icectly toaess Pu ; pond dire indi orities, to popular or vases pularize stock insults as ndand icons e°
w were used sed to mock the king,thiswie mini eee |anit wee eon , , HIS , ministers and the 5hison, or priests, ev oe and and nisenSon, oF « he . t plex Mth olneen on, the republic. Quite com
*Y se to
and
wore plac ried P and publicized some of the pamphlet li
'ices: hi seditious . Placards often inspi cries were often emi Ydirectly need Ober finds oF Praca
< emitted directly 1 oe. aoe slacard. ; rectly in respon are} ; sting mimicki merely ive Placards cking plstoto5didisturb s,placards authors could inspire s nine sting oneofficial sso dist pectators a royal
180 Theater as Politics festival or a mission or at least to remember other holidays which they were not able to celebrate (such as Saint Napoleon’s Day). Placards were also used to spread information and, especially, to organize protest. We will see this most clearly when we look closely at theater incidents of this period, in which placards played a critical role, not only in individual incidents but in spreading word of such incidents all over the country. Like
the seditious cries to which we will now turn our attention, placards were inscribed in specific times and places, were available to a limited, local audience, and even that, for a very short period of time; yet, like
many oral and gestural practices which people developed to express themselves in this period, there is an extraordinary coherence to the themes and the images and even the specific texts which appeared on placards throughout France. Seditious cries, usually brief, insulting, and carefully inscribed in time and place, offered even the least educated peasant a means for express-
ing him- or herself in this period. In his study of political culture in Toulouse during the Restoration, David Higgs argues that seditious cries “beg for a reading as part of a popular, oral, and contestatory discourse... .”8° He finds the cries issued in Toulouse to be “stylized, repetitive, and vague,” identical to the kinds of one-liners found in other parts of France at the same time.** Susanna Barrows, studying the same practice, but under the authoritarian Second Empire, sees seditious cries
as a way of “understanding the imaginaire of ordinary citizens in a period of harsh repression.” She stresses the complexity of what she calls not mere seditious cries, but “speech acts,” “texts to be decoded in their totality,” “a public multimedia and often iconographic set of actions.” 8? Her way of thinking about seditious cries is useful for the early
nineteenth century, for, as in the 1850s, seditious cries in the Restoration obeyed a certain rhythm and geography. They were often provoked and given meaning by exceptional events, celebrations, or objects. Every time a local civil official or missionary invited the crowd to
join him in saying “Long live the King” or “Long live Jesus and the Catholic Church,” it became an opportunity which many seized to express their support for the exiled emperor or to shout “Death to the Jesuits.” 88 The assassination of the duc de Berry was the occasion for several cries from “Long live Napoleon” to “The duc de Berry is dead, so much the better.” 8? While insults to members of the royal family were occasionally spontaneous, they were more often prompted by a visit of one of them.®° Usually people shouted and screamed in a crowd—on the sidelines of a procession, in the parterre of a theater, in a market-
“Practicing” Politics 181 place, or in the middle of a church ceremony; this served the double purpose of making their message heard by a large number of people at the same time as it made it difficult for the police to identify the culprit or
culprits. Punishment required a direct denunciation, which was quite rare.?! Where people were most often apprehended was in cafés, where they quite audibly toasted Napoleon or his family, or insulted some member of the royal family. Even more troublesome for the authorities than seditious cries were songs with problematic lyrics or songs which merely evoked memories of problematic events by their tunes. Songs played a particularly important and interesting role in the unofficial politics of the Restoration. On the one hand, they constituted part of a rich oral culture, available to the entire population. Songs were used by civil authorities and the missionaries in the context of their public celebrations; they were a key feature of popular festive culture, and the world of the café, the cabaret, and the fair.°* But songs also occupied a privileged place in the print culture of
this period.” They circulated in manuscript and in printed collections and thus played a key role in constituting a truly national print culture; but because they could also be easily performed and improvised, songs offered this national repertoire of images, lyrics, and tunes for local consumption by the entire population, not merely the literate few.”4 Like placards, songs were used as a means of spreading information and organizing protest. In the Seine-Inférieure two different songs circulated in the wake of the local archbishop’s unpopular pastoral letter in the spring of 1825; one contained twenty-two verses, the other fortyfour verses, which carefully and derisively explained the entire contents of the prelate’s recent decree.” These songs, which played an important role in gathering opposition against the archbishop also found their way
beyond Rouen; the prefect of the neighboring department of the Eure complained that he saw people exchanging these and other songs and writings “against the Jesuits” in the town square in Evreux.** National news was disseminated by way of “seditious” songs. One police report from Lyons in 1824 complained that the recent protests of the left in the
Chamber of Deputies against the expulsion of the opposition deputy Jacques-Antoine Manuel found their way into songs which were being distributed in Lyons.?” Protestors rewrote explicitly revolutionary songs, like the “Marseillaise,” but they also mimicked the revolutionaries’ practice of adapting popular drinking songs to political ends.?* Even if the people singing
them did use unproblematic lyrics, if the song was well known in its
182 Theater as Politics revolutionary or Bonapartist rendition it could still evoke memories and hopes attached to those events. One prefect complained about precisely such a problem in the context of a letter to the minister of the interior about the missionaries’ practice of writing canticles to well-known rev-
olutionary tunes; in the recent mission in Le Puy in 1822 it was the “Marseillaise” and the “Reveil du Peuple” which had been adapted by the missionaries, and the prefect was quick to point out how easily such tunes could serve to evoke memories and even spawn revolt: “it is important to ban from Catholic temples such tunes, already happily forgotten, and to which those seeking to lead a revolt or spread sedition need only add their old lyrics to carry away the masses.” °? That songs from the Revolution and the Empire, or recounting and evoking events from those periods, were both circulating and sung in public we know from the police records. This was a source of great frustration to the authorities, who had a lot of trouble controlling either the traffic in the printed song or the public singing of seditious verses. One report from Paris, which evokes the scene for the singing of a Bona-
partist song, is particularly enlightening both for its portrait of the crowd, attentively listening, and for the image it offers of the frustrated police official, impotent to stop such activities, and aware of the danger they could represent: “All of the windows and doors in the neighborhood [of the Faubourg St. Antoine] were full of people. The civil guard formed around them. It was between 9 and 10 A.M., when all the workers eat lunch. I was curious to listen to their song, which was making a huge racket.” The official then revealed the content of the song, which spoke ruefully of Napoleon’s death, but offered his son as the hope for
France’s future. The official made the dangers of such singing clear when he wrote to his superior, “You know that the unhappy Hundred Days were announced by such songs.” He concluded with a long description of the state this scene had produced in him: “I was in a fit of convulsive trembling for more than an hour . .. may God watch over France and over us; I feel death in my soul after hearing this cursed song.” 1° Another official, this time a member of the Royal Gendarmerie
from the Dordogne, tells a similar story. While walking along the left bank of a river, he found himself attracted by some songs coming from the right; once he finally got close enough to see and to hear, he made out that about fifteen young men were together, some standing, some seated, just outside an inn, singing a song expressing republican ideals. The key lines went: “The sovereign people are advancing / Tyrants will
“Practicing” Politics 183 die / The Republic calls us... A Frenchman must live for her / For her a Frenchman must die.” The report makes clear that the men were singing very loudly, since, although he wasn’t close to the singers, this official heard every word quite clearly. He also noted “that the singers appeared to go out of their way to stress certain words, giving more force to their
voices as if these words inspired in them sentiments of hatred and of hope, words like tremble, .... Tyrants, the sovereign people, the Republic, for her a Frenchman must die.” Interestingly, this official found himself vacillating between feelings of indignation and pity, “thinking about young men who were clearly strangers to the passions and memories of the revolution, who were at this moment unthinkingly repeating the words of those incorrigible sedition-mongers, deaf to the voice of reason and experience, to the cries of the homeland so long torn apart.” Angry with the “sedition-mongers” (factieux), but perplexed and moved
by the naive singing of the next generation, the officer found himself “plunged into sad thoughts, which made [him] tremble for the future of France.” 1°!
Police reports from all over France attest to the government’s frustrating efforts to control the widespread practice of singing. It was when people sang in public—in cafés, in workshops, in the streets—that the police took action; they tried to get copies of the songs, identify the authors and propagators of injurious verses, and arrest the individuals doing the singing. By their own admission, the police gathered but a tiny fraction of the seditious songs which circulated and were sung in this period.!°* On the rare occasions when they did catch offenders in the act of singing seditious songs, the authorities doled out stiff penalties.1°? But
more often, the authorities expressed frustration over the inability to identify the authors of songs or to get witnesses to testify against their friends or neighbors caught singing them.1°* Much more common than reports of prosecution for such public singing are accounts of incidents which had no consequences for their authors: either indulgent authorities chose to look the other way, or there was insufficient evidence, or a generous jury acquitted alleged perpetrators of seditious singing.!° As was true for most seditious practices in this period, government officials tended to see singing as part of an organized effort to gather op-
position to the government; at the center of this particular plot were traveling singers and peddlers, spreading the same problematic verses all over the country, and it was thus on these key troublemakers that police officials focused their attention. One police officer writing from Paris in
184 Theater as Politics 1829 explained his efforts to track down and punish traveling singers in the following terms: One of the tactics which the secret agents of the government’s enemies use to remind the people of the times of glory . . . is to get them to sing in cabarets and other public places, verses which recall the memory of Bonaparte. The Souvenirs of Béranger are sung in workshops, in the courtyards of factories, where traveling singers arrive and lead the crowd.!
A report from the Jura in 1818 focused on the traffic in seditious songs, arguing that where the government had to crack down was on the clandestine peddling of Bonapartist verses. Having himself brought in one peddler for selling copies of “Le Champ d’Asile,” a song honoring Napoleon, this police officer was shocked to hear this colporteur declare that “nowhere had anyone told him he could not distribute this song.” He wrote to this superior in Paris for support in carefully surveying this clandestine literature, arguing in the following terms: The leniency of the government, the advantages of freedom of the press, are not incompatible with a wise surveillance. I thought it necessary to prevent the clandestine distribution of this song, of little danger in and of itself, but which none the less makes a certain impression on the multitude, attracts the crowd, brings back memories that time has forced to fade, and that reason has made us forget... .” 1°”
Superiors in Paris always encouraged local police officials to pursue traveling singers and salesmen and to prosecute these key figures in the national traffic in seditious songs to the full extent of the law; but neither,
was, in fact, very easy to control. Like the circulation of printed matter more generally, the little pamphlets of verses tended to fall between the cracks of police surveillance and public prosecution. Indeed the complaints of police officers allow us to appreciate what they knew everyone around them appreciated: that a certain amount of sedition was tolerated, and certain practices were easier than others to get away with. The widespread traffic in songs was one such area.!°° Periodical literature was the form of print culture most subject to surveillance and prosecution under the Restoration’s press laws, and yet by all accounts, even newspapers regularly tested the limits of the regime’s toleration and only rarely suffered the consequences. Between 1815 and 1830 the opposition press issued a continuous stream of criticism of the government and its policies. Publicizing key political disputes, maintaining public pressure in favor of the freedoms promised by the Char-
“Practicing” Politics 185 ter (particularly freedom of the press), and consistently attacking the religious revival of the missionaries, the periodical press played a key role in shaping the unofficial politics of this period.!®
One crucial role played by the opposition press was to publicize other types of publications which joined it in its assault on the missionaries and the monarchy. From the very beginning of the Restoration, for example, publishers began to reprint writings from the Enlightenment, and the periodical press reported generously on each new edition, explaining that by making such works available “to the mass of the nation” these publishers were rendering “a veritable service” to France.'!° Between 1815 and 1824, multivolume sets of the writings of Voltaire and Rousseau were issued with increasing frequency. According to one estimate from the period, more than two million copies of these two authors’ works appeared in this short time.'"! Like the prefaces which accompanied such volumes, newspaper articles explained the critical role such works played in fortifying “the good spirit of the century,” particularly in light of the Catholic church’s overt assault on the Enlight-
enment, announced in a mandement of 1817, and publicized by the missionaries’ sermons and autos-da-fé all over France throughout the
Restoration.! If articles in the press and these early new editions of Rousseau and Voltaire were signs of a kind of “war of books” of the Restoration, the explosion of pamphlet literature after 1825 attests to the increasing importance of the printed word in extending this battle to a broader segment of the population.'!? Police bulletins from 1825 and 1826 are dominated by reports that increasing numbers of pamphlets in 32 format, costing as little as 5 to ro sous, were showing up all over France.!™4 At a time when the average Parisian worker earned 20 to 100 sous a day, and when a four-pound loaf of bread cost 13 sous, such little books were
clearly accessible to a broad population.''’ The police saw this surge of cheap editions as yet another means by which a small group of troublemakers was trying to agitate the population against the government. As one report explained: This is something which merits serious attention, this new tactic which the troublemakers employ with perseverance, of producing a mass of these small impious and seditious works, and then distributing them in public places at very low prices or even giving them out for nothing. One can see here not only the intention to pervert public opinion, but especially to agitate the population.''¢
186 Theater as Politics Another report stresses the content and the style of these new publications in order to underscore the effort made to reach the broadest possible public. The little brochures in 32 continue. Baskets placed before booksellers are full of them. Not only does one reprint separately, with notes and prefaces, anything which would serve to incite passions, but one publishes a mass of these little pamphlets in a popular style, evidently destined for the people.!!”
This “mass of pamphlets” included a broad range of titles. Most commonly reported were reprints of Voltaire’s Philosophical Dictionary, Candide, and La Pucelle.‘18 Generally anticlerical titles, such as a Brief History of the Inquisition, The Secret Education of the Jesuits, The Civil Constitution of the Clergy, or The Liberties of the Gallican Church, as well as Moliére’s Tartuffe, comprised a large proportion of the titles.1?? Attacks on the nobility or anything that evoked the specter of feudalism were common: The Feudal Dictionary instructed its readers on how to see evidence of feudalism returning all around them; Old
Regime titles which were relevant were reprinted, including Mirabeau’s “Discourse on the Birthright” and the scurrilous Biography of the Women of the Court and the Adventures of the Duc de Roquelaure.'*® General histories of France were featured in the list of pamphlets in 32, as were histories of the French Revolution, which, much to the chagrin of the police reporting, “enthusiastically described Danton, but covered
royalists, Vendéens, and even Louis XVI and Marie-Antoinette with insults.” 1/71 Béranger’s songs were also reprinted and distributed in this cheaper format.'** Pamphlets of this sort also publicized important speeches or essays regarding debates in the Chamber of Deputies, or tri-
als involving liberal newspapers and, as we shall see, troublemakers prosecuted for their part in theater riots.1 The police bulletins report on only those writings which clearly criticized the regime, or directly assaulted the church and especially the missionaries, and which apparently sought to lead the population to oppose the status quo; but other sources reveal that such publications participated in a veritable pamphlet war in which royalist and Catholic publishers actively participated. The missionaries, of course, publicized this public struggle from their pulpits and in their autos-da-fé, but supporting the religious revival were Catholic publishers who issued their own reading materials at equally low prices. To counter the flood of anticlerical titles assailing the missionaries’ revival were countless positive accounts of individual missions, as well as a widely circulating prophetic
“Practicing” Politics 187 literature which dovetailed with the missionaries’ central message.!** Organizations emerged to provide the public with alternative reading material; the most significant of these were the “oeuvre” of Good Books in Bordeaux, which established a vast lending library, and the Catholic Good Book Society, which distributed more than 800,000 cheap editions of its own between 1824 and 1826.' Bailly de Sarcy, the publisher of The Catholic Tribune, organized “The Society for Good Studies” in 1828 in the Latin Quarter, where it provided meeting rooms, libraries, and lectures on moral and religious subjects to counter the influence of analogous reading clubs and lectures supported by competing liberal groups. !7°
The periodical press continuously reported on the battle of the books, with the liberal press deriding the missionaries’ autos-da-fé, advertising the availability of cheap copies of Voltaire and Rousseau, and directly attacking the Catholic and royalist press. The Ami de la Religion popularized the missionaries’ tendency to cast the writings of the philosophes as poison and directly accused the liberal press of spreading it among the population: “This poison, doesn’t it circulate enough, and must one really augment the dosage?” !2” The Constitutionnel led the attack on the missionaries and depicted the public battle over the Enlightenment lit-
erature as a race, one that the missionaries and their supporters were clearly losing. As one article put it: “The more of Voltaire the missionaries obtain for their autos-da-fé, the more [his] works . . . are sought after. The number of publications surpasses the number of burnings.” 17°
Or another: “It’s a remarkable thing, the surge of public opinion in favor of Voltaire. Never has the author of La Henriade enjoyed such widespread popularity in France. From the instant that he was attacked, the public pronounced itself against the aggressors! . . . To each insult, the publishing industry responded with a new edition...” !?? Such articles always concluded with an announcement of a new edition and information about where and at what price it could be purchased. The very fact of this huge reproduction of Voltaire and Rousseau, and the apparently massive traffic in pamphlets which it precipitated, itself stood as a reproach, a retort to the efforts of the missionaries to denounce these authors and the rational spirit they represented. Efforts were made to block this traffic, which the police recognized was beyond the reach of existing censorship laws, but these failed. In the course of the debates on potential laws to control this commerce the deputy Pierre-Paul Royer-Collard posed the following critical question: “The books of the booksellers have made their way into people’s minds. It is
188 Theater as Politics from there that we must chase them. Do you have a law which can accomplish this?” 13° Royer-Collard’s assertion is tantalizing and leaves us with an interesting question. Just how widespread were the ideas of the philosophes? Were they now “entering the minds of the people” because of the public battles with the missionaries? Among members of the literate public who were opposed to the missionaries and the government, there is no question that the ideas, especially of Voltaire, had become better known. Lawyers defending people arrested for “sacrilegious” crimes often cited Voltaire; liberal newspapers and anticlerical pam-
phlets consistently evoked and popularized the ideas of the philosophes.!3! The language of Voltaire also crept into police reports, as in the following report on the missionaries in the largely Protestant town of La Rochelle: “Mr. Guyon distinguished himself in a sermon wherein, after having reviewed all of the religions of Europe, he tried to prove that ours is superior to all the others. The numerous assembly which this service attracted withdrew terribly unhappy with his sophisms, and each asked, ‘What has he proven? Nothing,’ and everyone must have repeated the beautiful verse of Voltaire: ‘I don’t damn you, why do you damn me?’” 132 But whether or not the philosophies of Voltaire and Rousseau or the mass of “impious and seditious” pamphlets had “made their way into the minds of the people” is a bit harder to assess. That the names of the key Enlightenment figures became common currency among the population at large and that certain key ideas achieved the status of political slogans, however, is completely clear. As we will see later when we consider the traffic in seditious objects more generally, the combined effect of the opposition press and this mass of cheap pamphlets was to popularize a set of references from the Enlightenment and to transform
them into a common critical vocabulary for protesting against the church and state during the Restoration. One version of Voltaire, advertised in the pages of Le Constitutionnel in 1826, beautifully expresses the significance of this traffic in the Enlightenment in the context of the Restoration. Announcing a new pamphlet version in 32, the publishers (Badouin Fréres) had the particularly ingenious idea of “reassuring the subscribers regarding the fate of their charming edition” by making it fireproof! As the advertisement explains, “At a time when one so charitably burns so many of our most useful and philosophical works, the precaution is not without use.” Ending the announcement with a description of the illustration that adorns the cover, the journalist transposes the kind of language and imagery long used to depict the sovereignty and magnitus of kings to the phi-
“Practicing” Politics 189 losophy of the Enlightenment: “It is exciting to see on the cover of the book ... the Phoenix ... the bird which is the emblem of imperishable existence.” !33 While this particular version of Voltaire’s works, humorously marketed as “inflammable,” makes the point most boldly, clearly the whole campaign of the publishers, working with the assistance of the liberal press, functioned to ensure the imperishability of Enlightenment ideas and their continued importance in constituting the foundation of modern society and politics. An even better example of the role the periodical press could play in combination with this widely circulating pamphlet literature can be found in the spate of Tartuffe incidents which shook the nation, and in which these two forms of print played a critical role. The liberal publications Le Constitutionnel and l’Ami de la Charte reported generously and supportively on theater incidents taking place all over the country. These newspapers spread the idea of demanding a performance of Tartuffe, or applying the themes and images of the play to a local event, and identifying the lines to which they ought to respond once the play was performed. Newspapers also publicized the pamphlet version of Tartuffe available in 32 format. One police report from Paris in 1826 cites the Mercure, which announced: “The conspiracy of the 32 format continues ... Messieurs Badouins gave the signal with their little Tartuffe.” 14
Given the contents of the broad range of seditious pamphlets, of which Tartuffe was but one example, and the fact that this widely circulating literature conspired with the opposition press to provoke other seditious practices, it is not surprising that government officials continually expressed frustration about their inability to control this traffic. One police report from May of 1826 beautifully summarizes the impotence of the administration to control these forms of print, which simply eluded the censorship laws of the realm. Pamphlets in small format for 5 sous augment in number every day. The Publisher Touquet printed a catalogue today of all the pamphlets which he has published since the 1st of January. There are 52, and he announced an additional 12 which were in press. The perseverance with which he pursues this enterprise beautifully demonstrates the intention to organize a new way of eluding current censorship laws, which, in fact, can only be exercised against the periodic press.'*°
If pamphlet literature slipped through the cracks of the Restoration’s censorship laws, the traffic in prints, individual song sheets, and singlepage seditious writings was even harder to control.1%¢
190 Theater as Politics The cases in which peddlers were arrested for selling seditious prints give us a peek at the wide range of seditious print material circulating in this period. Arrests of individual peddlers often led to searches in the storerooms of their suppliers. Boxes and boxes of prints from the Revolution and the Empire come into view: reports regularly allude to the efforts early on in the regime to destroy such objects, but also to the broad range of tactics local officials actually adopted in the context of their mise-en-place. Rather than simply destroy their stock, officials were content with the promise that problematic images would be hidden from view and not sold; or occasionally they report on cases in which problematic prints were transformed, with slogans being effaced, and even
heads of famous figures being replaced. We see a world of peddlers feigning illiteracy and ignorance of the content of their wares, even when the prints in question were illustrations clearly depicting Bonaparte or his wife and the symbols of the empire. We see juries regularly acquitting offenders on the grounds of ignorance, or because such articles portrayed “historical subjects,” rather than provocations to seditious acts, and thus did not constitute grounds for incrimination.'%”
The vast majority of prints of this sort were Bonapartist, featuring Bonaparte himself, or great battle scenes, or famous generals serving the emperor, or his wife, or, later in the regime, his son. But a large number
of these images were not merely “historical” and unproblematic representations dating from previous periods. One caricature circulating
in Le Mans featured Napoleon taking the throne back from Louis XVIII.13° One particular one-page publication which appeared in several different departments, and which clearly communicated a seditious message, was a print featuring various imperial accoutrements (including Napoleon wearing a crown) which, when folded, had the appearance of a fleur-de-lis. Thus having the outward appearance of support
for the monarchy, these images propagated the clear message that underneath the facade of legitimism was an avid Bonapartism.!*? (See fig. 2.)
Alongside this traffic in seditious prints was an even broader commerce in everyday objects bearing political insignia and slogans. With the return of Louis XVIII and his successor, Charles X, came the images of Bourbon kings, the white flag, the fleur-de-lis, all of which found their
way onto public buildings, but also onto everyday objects like card games and plateware. Furthermore, the public assault on seditious images of Napoleonic and revolutionary emblems in the first year of the regime, which involved requisitions of merchants’ stock as well as the re-
“Practicing” Politics 19I moval of such emblems from public edifices, delineated a clear symbolic battleground in which people could and did participate. Accompanying
missionaries were peddlers making available the symbols of their revival: the little cross symbolizing participation in the mission that one could wear on one’s lapel, but also booklets of canticles, images of Christ and the king, and, of course, mission crosses. But for those who opposed the monarchy or the missionaries, a wide array of objects that featured a spectrum of alternative emblems and slogans was available for purchase. Absolutely all the battles which were played out in the pages of the pamphlets and broadsheets of this period were replayed in the host of everyday objects circulating at the same time throughout the realm. To counter the anti-Enlightenment message of the missionaries or certain laws of the regime, one could purchase not only cheap copies of Voltaire but also razors bearing the likeness of the author of Candide, or of Mon-
tesquieu.!4° One could buy or sport scarves, umbrellas, or ties which made manifest one’s support for the Charter, freedom of the press, specific deputies such as Benjamin Constant and Cassier Perrier, or the famous songwriter Béranger. These objects read like a narrative of the key
struggles of the Restoration period: ties with “Sacrilege” or “The Jesuits” attest to the controversy over the Sacrilege Law of 1825; scarves with the slogan “The Project of the Law on the Freedom of the Press” attest to the battle over the press law in 1827.'*! To oppose the Bourbons and royalists, or show one’s support for Napoleon, one could buy playing cards with slogans such as “Down with the Bourbons,” or “Long live Napoleon,” or “Down with the Bourbons, Death to the royalists,” or cards figuring little eagles.'42 (See figs. 3 and 4.)
Bonapartist objects appeared in many forms. One could buy little busts of the past emperor or plateware representing different scenes in his political and military career./43 Silks featuring Napoleon in various poses and assorted imperial accoutrements were made into jackets which were sold and worn in different parts of France.'44 Bonapartist pipes “in white porcelain, with a blue effigy of Bonaparte” were sold publicly in Besancon.'** Napoleonic images could be carefully concealed in different kinds of objects. In 1822 the police in the Marne confiscated hats which had a pro-Bonapartist engraving hidden at their base under a piece of taffeta.'4¢ Likewise, in 1820, in Allier, tobacco cases were seized which had portraits of Napoleon, Marie-Louise, and their son covered with pieces of cloth.1*”7 In Toulon it was boxes of candy which were sold with images of Napoleon hidden under their covers.‘*8
a|
92 Theat Politi errr — ec rr rc — ee —— ERS es SERee Bases i |. eee ri : oe ees LC te Lc le =
ee ce eee ee ee ee rl ed rr RSS OSE ies i eR cements corsemere Se Se a ees aatatad dca mangas aad ure aetutrana cog CSL ee Uta asot EERE Sea aaronanh eer unimagraentate ema eae eden eamune traetio me ae mate aurache ora etm aerate ea elgee SERN ROR ONE REcE SORERLECETO TEESSES he oe eeteuotonrenaeamses csc orcnhece amin meee tuna aone antomen ceneeaean ainoman un neau ae akeerounba a moaiemng oe adeSANS ateae Renetad aN eR eee SS acs onses as can orem ame oem rca trea
EEE eer comer uencon sania noon iain meena nine na teen moe eau gnar acumen ei he eee aaa mata ree aa one SERS So RR Sa cah eas ga api ieeastan as eae ee ee MeL a HOSS SERS SS eas SU Ga ec rr OO ee ee erCESS en REE SRS EES SERRE S Sees EO ee oeSosRee sore oceeeeeSUaENeeHES URES SS — —rr”r—~—~—“OsOiiOiOtsC*s*S*si were written anew with lyrics relating to the local drama. Bills were distributed in the theater or thrown on the stage expressing the demands of the people. Placards were posted all over town— outside the archbishop’s residence, in the town square, in the halls of the theater, by the army barracks. On the roth of April, after the second attempted performance of a play which was not Tartuffe, the director of the theater, M. Morel, was given a letter which summarized the campaign of the people of Rouen. The letter explained, “that in spite
of the esteem in which the regular theatergoers hold [the director]...
Tartufferie 237 they would not suffer any performance, even for the opening of the season, other than Tartuffe of Moliére.” This resolution, “adopted unanimously by citizens who have always and will always know how to resist the dishonorable bondage that one would like to impose on them,” *4 was acted out as the people of Rouen flocked to the theater every night for a week, preventing any play but Tartuffe from being performed, and when they were forced out of the theater they spent hours in the streets harassing the local officials, singing, and organizing further.”>
Who was behind this organization? The authorities were quick to blame local liberals, working in cahoots with a national party. But the police based their assertion on very scanty evidence. The only testimony they had was that of one questionable spy who informed them that a group of liberal bourgeois was paying workers to come in from neighboring factory towns to swell the numbers at the theater.26 In other reports on seditious material, the authorities admitted that they were clearly “popular” in nature. Words were badly misspelled, the handwriting was clearly unpracticed, icons often stood in for words. According to the police, “The style of these writings proves that they could only be the work of men of the lowest classes of the people.” 7 In this entire affair only a small number of individuals was arrested, and therefore explicitly identified by the police. The authors of songs, placards, and billets were never apprehended; nor were the hundreds of people who went to the theater and demanded Tartuffe over the course of a month. We only know, from the reports of the prefect, that the participation was broad, including members from all parts of the political and social spectrum. In the theater the police were surprised to find that those seated in the expensive secondes and troisiémes whistled and stomped their feet along with those occupying cheaper seats.”® The prefect explained that he was horrified to learn “that Royalists of all classes” were opposed to his efforts to prevent Tartuffe’s performance, as were “all the magistrates and even all of the functionaries in my jurisdiction.” 2? What made Tartuffe resonate in the town of Rouen in 1825? Why was it such a perfect weapon in the people of Rouen’s struggle against what appeared to be a clerical plot? How did the events in Rouen look when refracted through this particular play? The most obvious lesson to draw from the play was that a Tartuffe was living in their midst—actually several Tartuffes—the archbishop, the vicar-general, and the many curés working with them. Almost all the seditious material collected by the police used “Tartuffe” interchangeably with the names of these men of the collar. Occasionally the resemblance between the priests and the main
2.38 Theater as Politics character was invoked as the reason for the play’s banning. One placard,
found on the main street in town on the night of 25 April 1825, read: People of Rouen, do you know why from seeing Tartuffe you are prevented? It’s because Le Surre finds in the play his own portrait presented! 3°
Other placards made the connection between Tartuffe and the local prelates more comically, as in the following placard, which suggested that the archbishop fill in for the sick actor: Notice to the people of Rouen The [Director of the Theater], wanting to obviate any inconveniences which could result from the adjournment of the play, Tartuffe, informs the public that it will be performed at the opening of the theater season. PS. Mr. Le Sur, . . . given the indisposition of Mr. Saint Elmé, [the supposedly sick actor], will fill the role of Tartuffe.?!
The recent mandement was easily compared to the rigid moral order which Tartuffe tried to impose on Orgon’s household. As in the play,
where numerous speeches are devoted to mocking Tartuffe’s ridiculous objections to the family’s life-style, the most onerous aspects of the archbishop’s new religious regime were mocked again and again in var-
ious songs which circulated throughout the spring of 1825. The most popular song, “Le Mandement,” described an invasive new system in which local curés acted as spies, carefully watching to see who gambled, worked, drank, or danced on Sunday, keeping track of who did and did
not take communion.*”
As in the play, the criticism quickly shifted from the new regulations themselves to the questionable motives and morals of their author. That ambition was behind the mandement was made clear in one song which accused Le Sur of seeking nothing short of canonization.** But greed motivated the prelates as well. In addition to its requiring strict adherence to Catholic practice, the mandement was criticized for calling for “expensive linens,” “dishes of gold,” and “other riches to do honor to our priests.” 34 The greed and hypocrisy of the clerics were stressed in the numerous songs and placards which accused them of accepting bribes from those who wanted to avoid the rigors of the mandement. One placard, found at the fountain in front of the Church of Notre Dame, explained how to avoid the problem of not being allowed to be a godparent: The public is informed that it will find chez le Sr. Vinegar, also known as le Sur, Passage des canons, a
Tartufferie 239 complete assortment of godfathers and godmothers in a state of grace. At the lowest price! *°
In Moliére’s play, Tartuffe’s hypocrisy was demonstrated by the contrast between his own behavior and the harsh moral standards he set up for everybody in Orgon’s household. In Rouen, the attacks on the moral character of the local priests suggested the same type of hypocrisy. While one song accused Le Sur of “having affairs with more than one tender maiden,” *° another attacked the prelate for a wider range of sins: “Raping virgins, incest / false testimony, . . . / Bestiality and the rest / are the privileged cases / reserved for the Monseigneur.” 3”
Just as the chaos in Orgon’s household was caused by the inappropriate influence wielded by the self-serving Tartuffe, so were the problems in Rouen caused by the unacceptable power of the church officials in civic affairs. One song complained, “Even in the theater / they wish to dictate the law”;3® but it was the collusion with the civil authorities which was worrisome, as another song explained: Or les gendarmes de France maris Chrétiens qu’ont du coeur avec nos dignes pasteurs ont fait sainte alliance. Les prétres nous beniront les gendarmes empoigneront. The gendarmes of France Christians who have a heart have with our worthy pastors made a saintly alliance. The priests will bless us The gendarmes will seize us.?
Already controlling the civic authorities, and extending their control into arenas like the theater, what was to prevent the clerics from ruling completely in Rouen? As the same song noted, Conduisez vous prudement M. le Curé controle Vos principes religieux et politiques bien mieux. Conduct yourselves prudently Mr. le Curé controls Your religious principles and political principles, better still.*°
240 Theater as Politics Just as it was the responsibility of the weaker members of Orgon’s family to make him see his error in allowing Tartuffe to reign over his household, so it was up to the people of Rouen to make the civic officials
see the dangers of allowing the religious authorities too much power. That they were capable of such a task was stressed in a letter sent to the theater director which depicted the population as comprised of “citizens who, in all times and all places, have known and will always know how to resist the dishonorable bondage that one would like to impose upon them.” +! A similar point was made in a placard written to encourage the soldiers in Rouen to support the people who were “too enlightened” to be taken in by “these calotins, who, calling themselves ministers of God, are nothing but false men, only seeking to make a revolution, . . .” 4 As the reference to “revolution” in the previous quotation suggests, the language and images of Tartuffe were used to describe what seemed like a serious change in thé church and the relationship between church and state which stretched far beyond the problems experienced in Rouen.
The letter to the director cited earlier contains a litany of expressions which described the situation in Rouen, but which could be used to assail a wide range of clerical abuses. The letter spoke of “deceptive appearances,” “shameful means,” and “the inquisitorial formulae” used by the “introducers of Jesuitism” who threatened “to impose bondage” on the good people of Rouen.*? In the end, the people of Rouen prevailed. On the 6th of May Tartuffe
was finally performed. Why did the authorities change their minds? Why was the ban on the play finally lifted? In a deus ex machina scenario worthy of Moliére, it was King Charles X himself who issued the order that the play be performed. The director of the theater of Rouen, M. Morel, took advantage of the break in the theater season at the end of April to go to Paris, where he pleaded his case before the minister of the interior for the right to perform Tartuffe in Rouen. He cited the appearance of Moliére’s play in Paris and Elbeuf and argued that it was unjust to ban the play in his town. The minister of the interior referred the case to the king, who finally authorized the production of Tartuffe in Rouen.**
For the long-awaited performance the theater was packed, and 300 people had to be turned away at the door. One official claimed that the most perfect order reigned, and he noted “that during the course of the play, all of the allusions were seized and applauded by the parterre, but in the fifth act, in the scene where one speaks of the justice of the King,
Tartufferie 241 unanimous applause erupted in every corner of the theater.” ** Why shouldn’t they applaud? After a full month of agitation in Rouen, the people seemed content that they had exposed the local fraudulent priests.
The very performance of Tartuffe was evidence that the prelates no longer reigned “at the same time in the church and in the theater,” 4 and, especially, over the civil authorities. They could enjoy the play, knowing in advance the denouement. When the bailiff told Orgon, “Sir, all is well; rest easy, and be grateful. / We serve a Prince to whom all fraud is hateful,” he might have been speaking directly to the people of Rouen. For had not their own king, in authorizing Tartuffe, proven himself to be deserving of Moliére’s words (disproving rumors circulating that he was a Jesuit-king)? “A Prince who sees into our inmost hearts, / And can’t be fooled by any trickster’s arts .../ Nor does his love of piety numb his wits / And make him tolerant of hypocrites.” 4” The performance of Tartuffe was not the only victory enjoyed by the people of Rouen. On the r9th of May, Archbishop Le Croy issued a second pastoral letter which responded to the criticism of the people of the Seine-Inférieure. In it he explained that “our intention was not to estab-
lish a sort of inquisition,” and that this second letter was intended to calm his parishioners. Le Constitutionnel immediately reprinted the new
letter and added that “[this is] very reassuring . . . we are happy to reprint such examples of moderation and wisdom; they have much more influence on us than the worst threats ... .”48 The religious content of the letter frankly did not change very much, but the spirit was different; the assumption that the church could impose itself on the lives of the Rouennais was now absent. So the inhabitants of Rouen had reason to rejoice indeed. However, in their effort to render clear the line dividing civil from religious authority in Rouen, and to reject efforts to enforce an unpopular new Catholicism in the spring of 1825, the people of Rouen developed
a popular anticlerical discourse which could be called into action at the slightest provocation. A year after the events just described, such a provocation appeared in the form of a visiting mission. Stink bombs in churches and disruptions of religious processions were added to the repertoire of seditious tactics, materials, and language to create one of the largest expressions of anticlericalism in France during the Restoration.*? But in 1826, when the people of Rouen demanded a performance of Tartuffe, the authorities showed that they had clearly learned a lesson from the previous year’s incident. In a police report from May of 1826 the
242 Theater as Politics prefect explained, “The authorities, in order to avoid throwing themselves into another compromising situation, have announced that there will be no opposition to a performance of Tartuffe.” °° When the play was performed, the people of Rouen demonstrated that they still appreciated how germane Moliére’s play was for them. The police noted, “In the theater, where one performed Tartuffe, all of the allusions that one believed applicable to current circumstances were covered from the beginning of the play to the end with riotous applause and footstomping.” >!
From this report, which is the only one that exists about this performance, it is hard to tell whether the audience reacted positively or negatively at the end when the king’s reputation was at issue. One can easily imagine that they took every opportunity to laugh at jokes at Tartuffe’s expense, thinking of the missionaries visiting their town. But whether by the spring of 1826 their views of the king had changed is hard to say. In the fall of the same year, the king’s day (Saint Charles’s Day) offered some critics an opportunity to express their disapproval of the sovereign, but at least, according to the police, this view was not yet widespread. Again the theater was the site of an incident, and although Tartujffe was not the play performed, “couplets in honor of the king” again became an occasion for the people of Rouen to express their opinion of their ruler. The report noted: “The King’s Day was celebrated in Rouen by public festivities, unmarred by any disorder; but at night in the theater, at the moment when the actor sang couplets in honor of the king, some signs of disapproval erupted from the parterre, and were mixed with applause from the rest of the audience.” *” In 1827, with no apparent local instigation evident from the archives, Tartuffe was performed and was once again the occasion for a theater incident. By then the sentiment toward the king seemed to be changing. There was no longer the “unanimous applause” which the king enjoyed in the spring of 1825. In his report on this latest incident, the prefect described, once again, the response of the audience to the last scene. “As is the custom, all of the passages against false priests excited loud and affected applause. Then, when the actor began his elegy to the king some boos and a whistle were heard in the parterre.”°? By 1827 the practice of using Tartuffe as a critical weapon against missionaries, local and national civil and ecclesiastical officials, and as a useful prism
for making sense of their world had spread far beyond the limits of Rouen.
Tartufferie 2.43 Tartuffe Incidents Throughout France, 1825-1829 Provoking “Tartufferie” Rouen was hardly the only city where people were demanding Tartuffe
and using its performances as an opportunity to express their disapproval of local priests, missionaries, and even the king. The incident in Rouen became a point of reference both for those in other towns who would emulate the Rouen theatergoers and for the local authorities trying to keep these incidents under control. The number of incidents resembling the one in Rouen, the frequency with which the incidents refer to one another, and the tendency of the participants in different towns to copy one another suggest a more concerted, and if not organized, at least loosely coordinated effort to confront the clericalism of the Restoration than has been previously appreciated.°* Authorities everywhere were pricking up their ears at the end of Moliére’s play, pulling down placards using themes from Tartuffe, and reporting to Paris about the varied uses of this seventeenth-century play to criticize clericalism between 1825 and 1829. Between these years, at least forty-one incidents involving Tartuffe erupted, in twenty-three different departments. (See table.) These ranged in time from the length of one performance to up to a month of continuous agitation. Participation ranged from what the authorities called “a few troublemakers” (for which one should understand “liberals” or “revolutionaries”) to a majority of the local population, including individuals of all political persuasions and social classes. A variety of specific, local circumstances prompted demands for, bannings of, the wide circulation of, or the ultimate performance of Tartuffe in different cities. For people in the urban centers of departments near Rouen, and even in cities as far away as Nantes and Toulon, it was the events in the Seine-Inférieure which seemed to spark minor incidents. In the same year a number of cities reacted against the Sacrilege Law—especially in towns with large Protestant communities such as Nimes.°° The local celebration of the elaborate coronation of Charles X or of the Papal Jubilee of 1826 often became the occasion of a Tartuffe incident.°® An overzealous, greedy, corrupt, or simply unpopular church official could spark an incident.°” The most common cause for the deployment of Tartuffe was the arrival in town of a mission.*® The incident in Rouen was itself a cause for theater disorders in neighboring departments. While the prefect of the adjacent department of the Eure expressed concern that the calumnies repeated against M. L’Abbé
CHRONOLOGY AND GEOGRAPHY OF TARTUFFERIE
1819 October-November Brest, Finistére
1823 January Rouen, Seine-Inférieure 1825 January Rouen, Seine-Inférieure April-May Rouen, Seine-Inférieure
May Fécamp, Seine-Inférieure Beauvais, Oise Nantes, Loire-Atlantique Bordeaux, Gironde Lyons, Rhone
June Toulon,Colmar, Var Haut-Rhin Lyons, Rhone
August Lyons, Rhone
La Rochelle, Charente-Maritime
December Nancy, Meurthe-et-Moselle Nimes, Gard
1826 January Clermont-Ferrand, Puy-de-Dome
May Angouléme, Charente
June Bordeaux, Gironde Rouen, Seine-Inférieure July Tours, Indre-et-Loire
August Rouen, Seine-Inférieure October Tours, Indre-et-Loire Strasbourg, Bas-Rhin
October—November Brest, Finistére Lyons, Rhéne Paris, Seine Perpignan, Pyrénées-Orientales
November Clermont-Ferrand, Puy-de-Dome Marseilles, Bouches-du-Rhone Rouen, Seine-Inférieure
December Toulouse, Haute-Garonne
1827 January Perpignan, Pyrénées-Orientales January—March Brest, Finistére February Nantes, Loire-Atlantique
March Bordeaux, Gironde Besancon, Doubs
May Epinal, Vosges June Rouen, Seine-Inférieure November Nimes, Gard
1829 August Marseilles, Bouches-du-Rhoéne September Angers, Maine-et-Loire
November Carpentras, Var
Tartufferie 245 Le Sur were spreading and gaining popularity in Evreux in late April 1825,°° the prefect of the Oise had a potential repetition of the events of Rouen on his hands. During a theater performance in Beauvais on the rst of May in 1825, pamphlets were distributed among the audience and thrown on the stage between the two plays scheduled demanding a performance of Tartuffe and, as in Rouen, threatening that the parterre would not stand for the performance of any other play. The prefect defended the people of his department, calling them “eminently tranquil, and enemies of all disorder,” and blamed outsiders, who “seek, now
more than ever, to agitate the population, making them distrust the ‘power of the Jesuits’ and seizing upon the mandement, at the least inconvenient,” to create disorder. Proclaiming the innocence of the native population, and underestimating the different ways one could become acquainted with Tartuffe, the prefect pointed out the complete ignorance of the inhabitants of Beauvais of Moliére’s masterpiece. “The best proof of the influence that one has exerted on the population, is that as far as I know this comedy has never been performed here, and that the majority of those who demand it, don’t even know it at all.” ®° He under-
lined this point by noting that the billets in the theater requesting Tartuffe misspelled the name of the play. In two cases, in Nantes and Toulon, the events in Rouen seemed to render Tartuffe more popular, and certainly made the authorities careful about how they handled its performance. In Nantes, an opening performance of Tartuffe “helped the local population rediscover the road to the theater,” which, according to the prefect, “they had long since forgotten.” Reporting on the performance of the opening night, the prefect noted that “the number of spectators was considerable.” The prefect was pleased to assure the minister of the interior that while the play was frequently applauded, it was always “without affectation” and “without tumultuous cries” and that the final, important speech “received its share of well-merited applause.” Everything went so well in fact that the prefect never would have bothered reporting the “nonincident” associated with Tartujffe in Nantes had it not been for the fact that “in another city, no less important [Rouen], it had been the cause or the pretext of scandalous troubles.” °! In Toulon the events in Rouen inspired the director of the local theater to stage a production of Tartuffe. Given what had happened in Rouen, the prefect of the Var explained that he did not think it would be either necessary or prudent to oppose the performance, although he took all the preventive police measures which seemed ap-
246 Theater as Politics propriate given the circumstances. The prefect reported with “satisfaction” that “the performance of this play which took place last night [on the zoth of June 1825] was perfectly calm; nothing out of order, nothing reprehensible was reported to me, and offered, on the contrary,
new evidence of the good spirit which guides the inhabitants of this
city.” Missionaries were a common target in Tartuffe incidents, especially after the example set by the people of Rouen in their reaction to the missionaries in 1826. (However, as we saw in the case of Brest in 1819, this application of Tartuffe was hardly new.) In Angouléme the people used a performance of Tartuffe to dissuade the local authorities from allowing a mission to come to town. In June of 1826, the parterre demanded a performance of Tartuffe. While the actual performance “took place without disorders,” many members of the audience warned the local officials “that if they wanted to give a mission, .. . that they would behave like they did in Rouen.” © In Angers, the arrival of missionaries in the fall of 1829 provoked someone to try to stir up a theater incident by posting the following placard in the corridor of the local theater: “Messieurs, wanting to see a performance of Tartuffe, we invite you to add your voices to ours and demand it at the beginning of the second play.” * In fact, no incident followed, but the local authorities arranged for full surveillance of the theater during the rest of its season just in case. In Nimes, the arrival of the missionaries coincided with the arrival of a flood of cheap copies of Tartuffe, sold for only eight centimes per copy. Within eight days of the missionaries’ arrival two performances of Moliére’s play were staged. The local ecclesiastical authorities were so concerned about the potential disturbances in a town “in which one third of the population was comprised of Protestants” that the local archbishop banned all outdoor ceremonies during the course of the mission.© Most reports on Tartuffe incidents in 1825 reveal that audiences responded primarily to the barbs in the play which were directed against religious figures. The report in L’Indicateur on a minor incident in Bordeaux was typical. It explained that “All the allusions which one could apply to false priests, who use religion for their own material gain, were seized and rigorously applauded.” °° But events such as the Sacrilege Law, the coronation, and the Jubilee of 1826 turned the audience’s attention increasingly to the lines which focused on the person of the king. A report from the prefect of the Gironde concerning an incident in Bordeaux which took place in the same city two years later, in 1827, was
Tartufferie 247 typical of this later period: “the speeches which offered allusions which
satisfied the opposition were ardently seized, and that of the last act which begins with ‘We live under a Prince, &c,” was interrupted by conversations, sneezing, and an affectation of noise which bespoke guilty intentions.” ©” Aside from producing this general shift, these events themselves provoked incidents. The passage of the Sacrilege Law of April 1825 provoked a number of incidents in Protestant regions, where it was seen as a sign of a return to persecution. In Colmar and Lyons, agitators were accused of spreading fear of persecution among Protestants that was linked to the growing intolerance of the Catholic clergy in conjunction with the recent Sac-
rilege Law. In an article of 5 June 1825, Le Constitutionnel made the connection for its liberal readers between the persecution of the Protestants and the usefulness of Tartuffe as a weapon against it: “Perhaps Tartuffe was performed intentionally in Colmar, the very night when not far from this city three Protestant travelers were forced to descend from their carriages and kneel before a procession. They undoubtedly feared the worst punishment threatened by the Sacrilege Law.” © In Lyons, the authorities claimed that “one tries to stir up concern among Protestants, by spreading the rumor that some rural priests were preaching against them; one plots to get youths to go to the theater and tumultuously de-
mand a performance of Tartuffe, which one performs anyway on the banks of the river.” © In the region of Nimes the Sacrilege Law created quite a stir among Protestants. This is hardly surprising given the long history of struggle between Protestants and Catholics in the department of the Gard. In its most recent flare-up, in the White Terror of 1815, the Catholics of Nimes used the return of the Bourbons to oust Protestants from office and kill them in the streets in a wave of violence not seen since the Revolution. The Protestants, no doubt, took very seriously the threat of persecution implicit in the Sacrilege Law.”° In May of 1825 the police reported that one speech in the Chamber of Deputies against this law was distributed everywhere within the Cévennes and the Avonage. “Those who take it upon themselves to read and to comment upon this law, announce that one wishes to annihilate the Protestant religion.” 7! According to the po-
lice, local Protestant ministers, acting on orders from their superiors, were contributing to the growing fear of persecution by Catholics.” There was no immediate Tartuffe incident in Nimes associated with these
events. However, as we saw earlier, by the fall of the same year when
248 Theater as Politics missionaries arrived in town, Nimes was flooded with cheap copies of Moliére’s play, and two performances of the play were staged within eight days of the missionaries’ arrival.” The coronation of Charles X became the occasion for several performances of Tartuffe in the city of Lyons. In Rouen, as we saw, the authorities had demonstrated concern that the timing of the theater incidents coincided with preparations for the massive celebration at Reims. In Lyons the authorities similarly accused local troublemakers of capitalizing on the festivities surrounding the seemingly unpopular coronation to stir up religious controversies. The apathy of the local population in regard to the coronation was underlined in one report in which the local police complained that “the festivities given on the occasion of the coronation ... have not produced the enthusiasm that one would expect in such a touching circumstance.” 74 Another report acknowledged that “the working class even showed a singular indifference” to the celebra-
tion.” But the police further accused “troublemakers” of using this unpopular celebration to stir up “religious controversies” in all social classes. Blaming local liberals, the authorities claimed that “they try to organize opposition against the priests even within the ranks of loyal monarchists.” 7° In conjunction with these efforts, three performances of Tartuffe were staged. “Enormous crowds attended the opening two performances,” where the bust of Moliére was crowned. By the third performance “the fervor had died down, in spite of the efforts to spread the news that the clergy protested against these performances.” ”” If the coronation upset some people in Lyons, Charles X’s participation in the Jubilee of 1826 troubled French people in a number of cities all over France. In Lyons the Jubilee was opened on the 29th of October with a procession attended by the local authorities along with more than 40,000 spectators. The authorities reported that “this imposing solemnity, which lasted for more than six hours, took place without the slightest disorder.” However, if the streets of Lyons were not filled with protesters during the procession, on the eve of the celebration the Théatre des Celestins was. A dozen spectators demanded Tartuffe, but no major incident followed. The next day, however (the day of the procession), “at the end of the performance new cries, much more numerous than on the previous night, were heard and two to three hundred people insisted upon occupying the theater where they caused considerable damage... .” The crowd was ultimately dispersed by the authorities, and three men were arrested—a previous editor of the liberal newspaper L’Eclaireur du Rhone, a silk worker, and a traveling salesman from Geneva. But the
Tartufferie 249 theater disorders did not end there. The following night “the disorders were renewed with even more violence.” The authorities were attacked with rocks and they in turn fired on the crowd, injuring some of the spectators.”® A similar scene took place in Strasbourg. As in Lyons, the festivities surrounding the Jubilee prompted the demand for performances of Tartuffe. In Strasbourg, however, the performance was scheduled and the theater filled to capacity when the civil authorities tried to block the production. A regiment was sent in to prevent the performance by force, and fighting broke out between the spectators and the authorities. When some missionaries who were in town for the Jubilee left on the 24th of October 1826, they had to be protected by a military escort.” ” In Marseilles the authorities were prepared for a similar theater disorder. One police report explained: “For some time now the municipal authorities noted that the coming Jubilee was fomenting opposition, and that troublemakers would take advantage of this fact and imitate the scenes of Rouen, Brest, and Lyons by demanding Tartuffe.” °° In fact
the prefect of the Bouches-du-Rhone and the mayor of Marseilles decided in advance to refuse any request to have Tartuffe performed, and in cases where this refusal became an occasion for troubles, the authorities intended to arrest the perpetrators and subject them to the full vengeance of the laws.®! A later report, submitted after the celebration of the Jubilee in Marseilles, demonstrated that the authorities had worried for nothing. Unlike the city of Brest, where disruptions inside and outside the churches and regular disorders in the theaters confronted the authorities with a town in revolt against the missionaries, there was no incident to speak of in Marseilles, either at the procession or at the theater the same night.® In Aix some troublemakers threw stones in two different churches during Vespers,®* but otherwise the Jubilee festivities proceeded without a hitch. In Besancon an incident was reported in conjunction with the Jubilee. A placard was erected on the doors of the college of the town on the day the Jubilee procession featuring its pupils was supposed to pass by it. The authorities suspected that the authors of this poster were the pupils who were unhappy about being forced to attend these processions. The placard, which took the form of a theater affiche, contained an announcement of the intention to perform Tartuffe, but also playfully used the themes and images of that comedy to mock the local situation in Besancon. By permission of the Mayor The privileged actors of the King, also belonging to the Great Jesuit Troupe of France
250 Theater as Politics Will give today, Monday, 5 March 1827 For the benefit of the hypocrites of this city and the Chapel of the Royal Collége A second performance of the Grand universal Jubilee. During the intermissions MM de Ch_ and du B_ The leading hypocrites of this city will dance a pas de deux with the nuns of Sacré Coeur de Jésus. The spectacle will begin with Le Tartuffe Comedy of Moliére, important play for which there is no need to offer praise and will conclude with The missionaries Harlequinade of M. Forbin-Janson.*4
Practicing “Tartufferie” In all of the incidents which rocked the theaters of France between 1825 and 1829, many of the same tactics were employed: requests for the performance of Tartujfe were made to theater directors, billets were thrown
on the stage during other performances, placards were hung on the walls, and the parterre simply began screaming for Tartuffe or distributing and reading pamphlet versions of the play in their seats. Plays other than Tartuffe were prevented from being performed. Once performed, the same lines became an occasion for disruptions of the play. As in Rouen, the contents of Moliére’s play offered a way of making sense of local events, and fed a growing popular anticlericalism. But how did the idea of using Tartuffe as a weapon in these local anticlerical incidents spread? The authorities blamed local liberals for spreading this idea and instigating incidents. Indeed, there seemed to be some justification for this position. In Toulouse and Epinal, local liberals demanded Tartuffe of the local theater director and so did instigate incidents.** In Toulouse, in late December 1826, a journalist for Le Constitutionnel and medical and law students made up the group of liberals behind the request. In Clermont-Ferrand, in January of 1826, liberal lawyers were central to a Tartuffe incident which took place in the theater, and stood together helping to defend those parties arrested by the police.®* So popular was Tartuffe in these years that the local liberals of Nancy came up with the idea of using a performance of the play as a fund-raiser for a subscription for the children of General Foy. The authorities blocked the effort.®”
In many cases the local police just blamed liberals without any real justification. Reports about an incident in La Rochelle in August of
Tartufferie 251 1825 blamed the “revolutionary party,” exactly the term used by the au-
thorities in Carpentras to explain the motivating force behind an incident in their town four years later.°® No substantiation for the accusation was offered in either case.
If individual liberals and liberal groups were themselves often involved in spreading the use of Tartuffe as a political weapon in these years, the liberal newspapers played an even more central role. As early as 1819 Le Constitutionnel informed its readers that Moliére’s masterpiece was relevant to their century: “People believe that Moliére was excessive in his portrayal of Tartuffe; our century proves that he is far from having exaggerated his traits.” 8? The liberal publications Le Constitutionnel and L’Ami de la Charte reported generously and supportively on
incidents taking place all over the country. Reporting on the Tartuffe incident in Rouen in April of 1825, Le Constitutionnel encouraged its readers to draw a broad conclusion from the banning of Tartuffe in the Seine-Inférieure: A fact like this offers a beautiful portrait of an epoch. Isn’t it a strange thing that a comedy which appeared under the auspices of Louis XIV, which has never been banned, even under the empire of P. Lachaise, should be prohibited under the ministries of Villéle, Francet, Corbiére, and Frayssinous? 7°
These papers also played an important role in spreading the idea of demanding a performance of Tartuffe, of applying the themes and images of the play to local events, and informing the audience of which lines to respond to once the play was performed. An article of 5 June 1825 in Le Constitutionnel reported on eight different Tartuffe incidents and encouraged its readers “to go to the theater which offers so many contradictions, on the stage, go from the scenes of the missionaries to those of Tartuffe, join the crowd at performances of the great comedy of the day, seize with enthusiasm each allusion. .. .”! According to the authorities, the liberal papers went beyond generally encouraging Tartuffe incidents. In Clermont-Ferrand L’Ami de la Charte was blamed by the police for “predicting” and thereby provoking an incident in the theater. In an article of 28 January 1826 the newspaper ran an article which applauded the decision of the theater direc-
tor to stage Tartuffe the next day, and noted, “One can predict, with assurance, that there will be a huge crowd, and the administration should prepare itself to satisfy the demands of Moliére’s admirers to see the bust of their immortal author.” *” In the cover letter which accompanied a copy of this article, the prefect of the Puy-de-Dome described the scene
252 Theater as Politics at the theater on the 29th of January and directly blamed the article in the liberal paper for provoking the demand to pay homage to Moliére’s bust.?? He also enclosed an article from the Journal du Puy-du-Déme which drew the same conclusion. Moliére’s Tartuffe, which was performed yesterday at our theater, was for some turbulent spectators an occasion to renew the cries and vociferations which, in a similar circumstance, shook the town of Rouen last year. . . . It seems to us that the frenetic admiration of the parterre should have been satisfied with all of the calculated applause given during each scene; but it was necessary that they also fulfill the prediction of L’Ami de La Charte, [and so the bust of Moliére was requested].”4
Hundreds of thousands of cheap, tiny copies of Tartuffe were made available by liberal publishers. Like the newspapers, the prefaces to these editions informed the readers about the relevance of Tartujfe to contemporary French society. They encouraged the people of France “to oppose the Tartufe [sic] on the stage with the Tartufes of the world, ... Don’t be content to applaud this play in the theater, read it, study it, carry it with you as a new kind of protection against the sellers of amulets, like an antidote against charlatans.” ?° They even told their readers to identify with the best characters in the play: “women should become like Elmire, young men, like Damis, wise and religious men, like Cléante;” the consequence of their collective efforts would be “that soon, the Orgons and the Pernelles would open their eyes.” 9° According to one preface, the political circumstances of the day assured the popularity of this seventeenthcentury play. “It’s Charles X who makes this play eminently germane to-
day, and keeps it alive in the theater.”?” That the play would serve an important political purpose was also stressed. “Today, when one finds fanaticism and superstition suddenly resurrected, and spread anew [by the missionaries], they are confronted by Moliére, always alive and in all of his éclat, Moliére with Tartufe [sic], and they no longer know how to play their role.” 7° The same preface also underlined the importance of publishing Moliére’s comedy in large numbers and for readers to repeat and
respond enthusiastically to certain verses. “Hypocrisy attacks us with condemnations, with denunciations, with bailiffs and police officers; we respond with 100,000 copies of Tartufe [sic]; and at the end, the French will repeat as a family: ‘We live under a Prince, to whom all fraud is hateful.’” 9? Another preface explicitly underscored the importance of making cheap copies available so as to educate the population at large about the utility of Moliére’s comedy: “these were the intentions of the pub-
Tartufferie 2.53 lishers of the small format of Tartuffe; they wanted virtuous men of all classes, ... to have access to this excellent work.” 1° The liberal newspapers helped to publicize these cheap editions by informing readers of their local availability.1%
The men and women of France could learn about Moliére’s comedy not only by reading newspapers or special prefaces affixed to cheap pamphlet versions of the play; broadsheets featuring stock scenes from Tartuffe also publicized its contents. The broadsheet reproduced here was quite typical: the top part represents the moment from act 3, scene 3, when Tartuffe is seducing Elmire (and looking down her dress) and pronouncing “My God, but from this point of view, the work is marvelous!” But at the bottom is a four-stanza song, to the popular tune “la Colonne,” which offers a brief history of the play, and invites those who would see and sing the song to go to the theater, applaud Moliére’s verses, crown his bust, and thereby continue the struggle against fanaticism, ignorance, and hypocrisy.'™ (See figure 7.) While this is the only such image I have found with a song as well, there were many examples of broadsheets representing the most popular scenes from the play. The scenes most commonly depicted seemed to have been those involving Elmire’s seduction by Tartuffe, in act 3, scenes 2 and 3, and act 4, scene 5, as well as the scene in which Orgon discovers the truth about Tartuffe because from his hiding place under a table he overhears the hypocrite’s final efforts at seduction. Throughout the Restoration, although especially in the latter 1820s,
French men and women were also treated to vaudeville adaptations which involved Moliére or this particular comedy. The key scenes from Tartuffe were rendered accessible and memorable by playwrights who put key soliloquys to popular tunes. One play written by Henri Simon, entitled Ninon, Moliére, et Tartuffe, was a one-act vaudeville performed in Paris in 1815, featuring a scene between Tartuffe and a servant, Annette, which was a direct imitation of the scene in which Tartuffe first seduces Elmire. Including a song called “Il est avec le ciel / des accomodemens,” put to the popular tune “Mon pére était pot,” this play rehearsed all the stock insults and key phrases which were reproduced in one theater incident after another during the Restoration.!°3 Another short play, Un Trait de Moliére: Prologue du Tartuffe, written by Eugéne de Pradel, again features Tartuffe as a character in conversation with Moliére, and ends with Moliére himself addressing the audience and pronouncing “that today, surely, Tartuffe will be of use to you.” 1% Likewise,
ee rrrclcrrrrrrlcrc ee ccrr ll eas SESE SESS DONOR Cy te, CRN EE NM NA ES a ASR SS CRE SA ee ase ame eC ay Nia aoa mee cee mene na eee eee an,
Re SUC SS GSEs Cees ORE SOS ee BESS SOP RE SUS SRO SR SO eC SSG ces
r—= ee= a=ee _ iee eee gf« .a i=== =§==f-. ee ee =ee ii§§==F EERE AN oie estrus ca Nears nse ae MER Oecae ERG RU TeLS Ge Nan oh NCAR cna ne ania EASE een ae ee ea ee ua ee Aa SAC a Airc nc enmecee Se SARS
SARE SUS BRU Cea catty ey re NNER ca ea a Camry og a eRe CoN CoRR aR RL na ERE Nu am CO eau CRN Ra CU ences e ay EE
ee Bataan ee oes Rae eee gone Bee orca ORS acer eGo Gaee a as SERGE UNCON SE ALY BURR ONG ARORA OUNCES SOE FE SE ee os
Fe NE SR eae tr en eT ee nC eee Ce ee ee
Er
PRSE BS RN OU OK UR inte aa ee Sen UEC ea Ce Re au ae TN Or Re ERE EU URE Ss ng
oo RSS ON hc SARACEN Se Se ceSER OEERon 2OS SS gebooene Soest EU SS See RS SOE SC ReeSo TO PoeBe 3Sei###. #.GS . .§.§§§._.-==sse. i:Ce ee
Pee Oe oe EU RS See CeO tne ere
—s«. ee -— «se
NEES SSS earn ac eerie EN ake SO CRU ONO BAA Ria Sea Ore Nae tie CSR ANNE omar cae RS ue ine Re ae ut: BR RG EN th eee RS eRe y Ee
— rrt—i—